THE STRENGTH
OF THE PJ
EX LIBRIS
THE STRENGTH OF THE PINES
He marked the little space of gray squarely between the
two reddening eyes. FRONTISPIECE. See page 305.
THE STRENGTH OF
THE PINES
BY
EDISON MARSHALL
WITH FRONTISPIECE BY
W. HERBERT DUNTON
BOSTON
LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY
1921
Copyright, 1921,
BY LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY.
All rights reserved
Published February, 1921
THE COLONIAL PRESS
C. H. SIMONDS CO., BOSTON, U. 8. A.
TO
LILLE BARTOO MARSHALL
DEAR COMRADE AND GUIDE
WHO GAVE ME LIFE
^385
irroo
CONTENTS
BOOK ONE
PAGE"
THE CALL OF THE BLOOD 1
BOOK TWO
THE BLOOD ATONEMENT 87
BOOK THREE
THE COMING OF THE STRENGTH . .
THE STRENGTH OF
THE PINES
BOOK ONE,
THE CALL OF THE BLOOD
BRUCE was wakened by the sharp ring of his
telephone bell. He heard its first note; and its
jingle seemed to continue endlessly. There was no
period of drowsiness between sleep and wakeful-
ness; instantly he was fully aroused, in complete
control of allhis faculties. And this is not espe-
cially common to men bred in the security of civili-
zation. Rather it is a trait of the wild creatures;
a little matter that is quite necessary if they care at
all about living. A deer, for instance, that cannot
leap out of a mid-afternoon nap, soar a fair ten feet
in the air, and come down with legs in the right posi-
tion for running comes to a sad end, rather soon, in
a puma's claws. Frontiersmen learn the trait too ;
but as Bruce was a dweller of cities it seemed some-
what strange in him. The trim, hard muscles were
all cocked and primed for anything they should be
told to do.
2 The Strength of the Pines
Then he grunted rebelliously and glanced at his
watch beneath the pillow. He had gone to bed
early; it was just before midnight now. " I wish
they 'd leave me alone at night, anyway," he mut-
tered, as he slipped on his dressing gown.
He had no doubts whatever concerning the na-
ture of this call. There had been one hundred like
it during the previous month. His foster father
had recently died, his estate was being settled up,
and Bruce had been having a somewhat strenuous
time with his creditors. He understood the man's
real financial situation at last ; at his death the whole
business structure collapsed like the eggshell it was.
Bruce had supposed that most of the debts had been
paid by now; he wondered, as he fumbled into his
bedroom slippers, whether the thousand or so dol-
lars that were left would cover the claim of the man
who was now calling him to the telephone. The
fact that he was, at last, the penniless " beggar "
that Duncan had called him at their first meeting
did n't matter one way or another. For some years
he had not hoped for help from his foster parent.
The collapse of the latter 's business had put Bruce
out of work, but that was just a detail too. All
he wanted now was to get things straightened up
and go away — where, he did not know or care.
" This is Mr. Duncan," he said coldly into the
transmitter.
When he heard a voice come scratching over the
wires, he felt sure that he had guessed right. Quite
often his foster father's creditors talked in that
same excited, hurried way. It was rather neces-
The Call of the Blood 3
sary to be hurried and excited if a claim were to be
met before the dwindling financial resources were
exhausted. But the words themselves, however —
as soon as they gave their interpretation in his brain
— threw a different light on the matter.
" How do you do, Mr. Duncan," the voice an-
swered. " Pardon me if I got you up. I want
to talk to your son, Bruce."
Bruce emitted a little gasp of amazement.
Whoever talked at the end of the line obviously
didn't know that the elder Duncan was dead.
Bruce had a moment of grim humor in which he
mused that this voice would have done rather well
if it could arouse his foster father to answer it.
" The elder Mr. Duncan died last month," he an-
swered simply. There was not the slightest trace
of emotion in his tone. No wayfarer on the street
could have been, as far as facts went, more of a
stranger to him; there was no sense of loss at his
death and no cause for pretense now. ' This is
Bruce speaking."
He heard the other gasp. " Old man, I 'm
sorry," his contrite voice came. " I did n't know
of your loss. This is Barney — Barney Wegan —
and I just got in from the West. Have n't had a
bit of news for months. Accept my earnest sym-
pathies — "
"Barney! Of course." The delight grew on
Bruce's face; for Barney Wegan, a man whom he
had met and learned to know on the gym floor of
his club, was quite near to being a real friend.
" And what 's up, Barney? "
4 The Strength of the Pines
The man's voice changed at once — went back
to its same urgent, but rather embarrassed tone.
" You won't believe me if I tell you, so I won't try
to tell you over the 'phone. But I must come up —
right away. May I ? "
"Of course — "
" I '11 jump in my car and be there in a minute."
Bruce hung up, slowly descended to his library,
and flashed on the lights.
For the first time he was revealed plainly. His
was a familiar type ; but at the same time the best
type too. He had the face and the body of an
athlete, a man who keeps himself fit ; and there was
nothing mawkish or effeminate about him. His
dark hair was clipped close about his temples, and
even two hours in bed had not disarranged its care-
ful part. It is true that men did look twice at
Bruce's eyes, set in a brown, clean-cut face, never
knowing exactly why they did so. They had star-
tling potentialities. They were quite clear now,
wide-awake and cool, yet they had a strange depth
of expression and shadow that might mean, some-
where beneath the bland and cool exterior, a capac-
ity for great emotions and passions.
He had only a few minutes to wait; then Barney
Wegan tapped at his door. This man was bronzed
by the sun, never more fit, never straighter and
taller and more lithe. He had just come from the
far places. The embarrassment that Bruce had
detected in his voice was in his face and manner too.
' You '11 think I 'm crazy, for routing you out
at this time of night, Bruce," he began. " And
The Call of the Blood 5
I 'm going to get this matter off my chest as soon
as possible and let you go to bed. It 's all batty,
anyway. But I was cautioned by all the devils
of the deep to see you — the moment I came
here."
" Cigarettes on the smoking-stand," Bruce said
steadily. " And tell away."
" But tell me something first. Was Duncan
your real father? If he was, I '11 know I 'm up a
wrong tree. I don't mean to be personal -
" He was n't. I thought you knew it. My real
father is something like you — something of a
mystery."
" I won't be a mystery long. He 's not, eh —
that 's what the old hag said. Excuse me, old man,
for saying ' hag.' But she was one, if there is any
such. Lord knows who she is, or whether or not
she 's a relation of yours. But I '11 begin at the be-
ginning. You know I was way back on the Oregon
frontier — back in the Cascades?"
" I did n't know," Bruce replied. " I knew you
were somewhere in the wilds. You always are.
Go on."
" I was back there fishing for steelhead in a river
they call the Rogue. My boy, a steelhead is — but
you don't want to hear that. You want to get the
story. But a steelhead, you ought to know, is a
trout — a fish — and the noblest fish that ever was !
Oh, Heavens above! how they can strike! But
while way up on the upper waters I heard of a place
called Trail's End — a place where wise men do
not go."
6 The Strength of the Pines
" And of course you went."
" Of course. The name sounds silly now, but
it won't if you ever go there. There are only a few
families, Bruce, miles and miles apart, in the whole
region. And it 's enormous — no one knows how
big. Just ridge on ridge. And I went back to
kill a bear."
"But stop!" Bruce commanded. He lighted
a cigarette. " I thought you were against killing
bears — any except the big boys up North."
" That 's just it. I am against killing the little
black fellows — they are the only folk with any
brains in the woods. But this, Bruce, was a real
bear, — a left-over from fifty years ago. There
used to be grizzlies through that country, you see,
but everybody supposed that the last of them had
been shot. But evidently there was one family that
still remained — in the farthest recesses of Trail's
End — and all at once the biggest, meanest grizzly
ever remembered showed up on the cattle ranges of
the plateau. With some others, I went to get him.
' The Killer ', they call him — and he certainly is
death on live stock. I did n't get the bear, but one
day my guide stopped at a broken-down old cabin
on the hillside for a drink of water. I was four
miles away in camp. The guide came back and
asked me if I was from this very city.
" I told him yes, and asked him why he wanted
to know. He said that this old woman sent word,
secretly, to every stranger that ever came to fish or
hunt in the region of Trail's End, wanting to know
if they came from here. I was the first one that
The Call of the Blood 7
answered ' yes.' And the guide said that she wanted
me to come to her cabin and see her.
" I went — and I won't describe to you how she
looked. I '11 let you see for yourself, if you care to
follow out her instructions. And now the strange
part comes in. The old witch raised her arm,
pointed her cane at me, and asked me if I knew
Newton Duncan.
" I told her there might be several Newton Dun-
cans in a city this size. You should have seen the
pain grow on her face. * After so long, after so
long ! ' she cried, in the queerest, sobbing way. She
seemed to have waited years to find some one
from here, and when I came I did n't know what
she wanted. Then she took heart and began
again.
" ' This Newton Duncan had a son — a foster-
son — named Bruce,' she told me. And then I
said I knew you.
" You can't imagine the change that came over
her. I thought she 'd die of heart failure. The
whole thing, Bruce — if you must know — gave me
the creeps. 4 Tell him to come here,' she begged
me. ' Don't lose a moment. As soon as you get
home, tell him to come here.'
" Of course I asked other questions, but I
could n't get much out of her. One of 'em was why
she hadn't written to Duncan. The answer was
simple enough — that she didn't know how to
write. Those in the mountains that could write
would n't, or could n't — she was a trifle vague on
that point — dispatch a letter. Something is up,
8 The Strength of the Pines
Bruce, and I don't know what. But she said —
for you to come back and find — Linda."
Bruce suddenly leaned forward. If Barney had
been surprised by the developments in the mountain
cabin, he was more surprised now. The brown face
had suddenly grown quite white.
" What else did she say? " Bruce asked. He
spoke slowly — with evident difficulty.
Barney answered with the same slowness — each
word distinct. " For you to come — and she made
me swear to tell you — on the first train. That
there was no time to lose." The man's voice broke
and changed. "Isn't that queer, Bruce?"
Bruce slowly stiffened; the only sign of emotion
was one that even Barney's eyes, trained to the dim-
ness of the wilderness, failed to see. It was just an
ever-tightening clasp of his hands over the chair
arms until the blue veins stood out. There was
nothing else about him to indicate that the dead had
spoken to him, — that one of the great dreams of
his life was coming true. He spoke rather pain-
fully. " Did — did you get the idea that the old
woman was Linda? "
" I did n't get that idea," Barney answered.
" She spoke of Linda as she might of a young girl."
" And how do you get there? "
" Buy a ticket for Deer Creek, in Southern Ore-
gon." There was no need for Bruce to write the
name. It was branded, ineffaceably, in his con-
sciousness. ' Then take up the long road of the
Divide, clear to a little store — Martin's, they call
it — fifty miles back. Then ask directions from
The Call of the Blood 9
there. Ask, she told me to tell you, for Mrs.
Ross."
Bruce leaped up and turned swiftly through the
door. Barney called a question to his vanishing
figure. Just for an instant Bruce turned, — his
dark eyes glowing beneath his straight brows.
" I 'm 'phoning — asking for reservations on the
first train West," he answered.
II
BEFORE the gray of dawn came over the land
Bruce Duncan had started westward. He had no
self-amazement at the lightning decision. He was
only strangely and deeply exultant.
The reasons why went too deep within him to be
easily seen. In the first place, it was adventure —
and Bruce 's life had not been very adventurous
heretofore. It was true that he had known
triumphs on the athletic fields, and his first days at
a great University had been novel and entertain-
ing. But now he was going to the West, to a land
he had dreamed about, the land of wide spaces and
great opportunities. It was not his first western
journey. Often he had gone there as a child —
had engaged in furious battles with outlaws and In-
dians; but those had been adventures of imagina-
tion cnly. This was reality at last. The clicking
rails beneath the speeding train left no chance for
doubt.
Then there was a sense of immeasurable relief at
his sudden and unexpected freedom from the finan-
cial problems his father had left. He would have
no more consultations with impatient creditors,
no more would he strive to gather together the
ruins of the business, and attempt to salvage the
small remaining fragments of his father's fortune.
He was free of it all, at last. He had never known
The Call of the Blood 1 1
a darker hour — and none of them that this quiet,
lonely-spirited man had known had been very
bright — than the one he had spent just before go-
ing to bed earlier that evening. He had no plans,
he did n't know which way to turn. All at once,
through the message that Barney had brought him,
he had seen a clear trail ahead. It was something
to do, something at last that mattered.
Finally there remained the eminent fact that this
was an answer to his dream. He was going toward
Linda, at last. The girl had been the one living
creature in his memory that he had cared for and
who cared for him — the one person whose interest
in him was real. Men are a gregarious species.
The trails are bewildering and steep to one who
travels them alone. Linda, the little " spitfire " of
his boyhood, had suddenly become the one reality
in his world, and as he thought of her, his memory
reviewed the few impressions he had retained of
his childhood.
First was the Square House — the orphanage
— where the Woman had turned him over to the
nurse in charge. Sometimes, when tobacco smoke
was heavy upon him, Bruce could catch very dim
and fleeting glimpses of the Woman's face. He
would bend his mind to it, he would probe and
probe, with little, reaching filaments of thought,
into the dead years — and then, all at once, the fila-
ments would rush together, catch hold of a frag-
ment of her picture, and like a chain-gang of ants
carrying a straw, come lugging it up for him to see.
It was only a fleeting glimpse, only the faintest blur
i 2 The Strength of the Pines
in half-tone, and then quite gone. Yet he never
gave up trying. He never quit longing for just
one second of vivid rerr ^mbrance. It was one of
the few and really great desires that Bruce had in
life.
The few times that her memory-picture did come
to him, it brought a number of things with it. One
of them was a great and 'overwhelming realization
of some terrible tragedy and terror the nature of
which he could not even guess. There had been
terrible and tragic events — where and how he
could not guess — lost in^ those forgotten days of
his babyhood.
" She 's been through fire," the nurse told the
doctor when he came in and the door had closed
behind the Woman. Bruce did remember these
words, because many years elapsed before he com-
pletely puzzled them out. The nurse had n't meant
such fires as swept through the far-spread ever-
green forests of the Northwest. It was some other,
dread fire that seared the spirit and burned the
bloom out of the face and all the gentle lights out
of the eyes. It did, however, leave certain lights,
but they were such that their remembrance brought
no pleasure to Bruce. They were just a wild glare,
a fixed, strange brightness as of great fear or in-
sanity.
The Woman had kissed him and gone quickly;
and he had been too young to remember if she had
carried any sort of bundle close to her breast.
Yet, the man considered, there must have been such
a bundle — otherwise he could n't possibly account
The Call of the Blood 1 3
for Linda. And there were no doubts about her, at
all. Her picture was always on the first page of
the photograph album of his memory; he had only
to turn over one little sheet of years to find her.
Of course he had no memories of her that first
day, nor for the first years. But all later memories
of the Square House always included her. She
must have been nearly four years younger than him-
self ; thus when he was taken to the house she was
only an infant. But thereafter, the nurses put
them together often; and when Linda was able to
talk, she called him something that sounded like
Bwovaboo. She called him that so often that for
a long time he could n't be sure that was n't his real
name. Now, in manhood, he interpreted.
" Brother Bruce, of course. Linda was of course
a sister."
Linda had been homely; even a small boy could
notice that. Besides, Linda was nearly six when
Bruce had left for good ; and he was then at an age
in which impressions begin to be lasting. Her hair
was quite blond then, and her features rather irreg-
ular. But there had been a light in her eyes ! By
his word, there had been!
She had been angry at him times in plenty —
over some childish game — and he remembered how
that light had grown and brightened. She had flung
at him too, like a lynx springing from a tree. Bruce
paused in his reflections to wonder at himself over
the simile — for lynx were no especial acquaint-
ances of his. He knew them only through books,
as he knew many other things that stirred Hs imag-
14 The Strength of the Pines
ination. But he laughed at the memory of her
sudden, explosive ferocity, — the way her hands
had smacked against his cheeks, and her sharp little
nails had scratched him. Curiously, he had never
fought back as is the usual thing between small
boys and small girls. And it was n't exactly chiv-
alry either, rather just an inability to feel resent-
ment. Besides, there were always tears and repent-
ance afterward, and certain pettings that he
openly scorned and secretly loved.
"I must have been a strange kid!" Bruce
thought.
It was true he had; and nothing was stranger
than this attitude toward Baby Sister. He was
always so gentle with her, but at the same time he
contemplated her with a sort of amused tolerance
that is to be expected in strong men rather than
solemn little boys. " Little Spitfire " he some-
times called her ; but no one else could call her any-
thing but Linda. For Bruce had been an able
little fighter, even in those days.
There was other evidence of strangeness. He
was fond of drawing pictures. This was nothing
in itself; many little boys are fond of drawing pic-
tures. Nor were his unusually good. Their
strangeness lay in his subjects. He liked to draw
animals in particular, — the animals he read about
in school and in such books as were brought to him.
And sometimes he drew Indians and cowboys.
And one day — when he was n't half watching
what he was doing — he drew something quite dif-
ferent.
The Call of the Blood 15
Perhaps he would n't have looked at it twice, if
the teacher had n't stepped up behind him and taken
it out of his hands. It was " geography " then,
not " drawing ", and he should have been " paying
attention." And he had every reason to think that
the teacher would crumple up his picture and send
him to the cloak-room for punishment.
But she did no such thing. It was true that she
seized the paper, and her fingers were all set to
crumple it. But when her eyes glanced down, her
fingers slowly straightened. Then she looked
again — carefully.
"What is this, Bruce?" she asked. "What
have you been drawing? "
Curiously, she had quite forgotten to scold him
for not paying attention. And Bruce, who had
drawn the picture with his thoughts far away from
his pencil, had to look and see himself. Then he
could n't be sure.
"I — I don't know," the child answered. But
the picture was even better than his more conscious
drawings, and it did look like something. He
looked again, and for an instant let his thoughts go
wandering here and there. ' Those are trees," he
said. A word caught at his throat and he blurted it
out. " Pines! Pine trees, growing on a mountain."
Once translated, the picture could hardly be mis-
taken. There was a range of mountains in the
background, and a distinct sky line plumed with
pines, — those tall, dark trees that symbolize, above
all other trees, the wilderness.
" Not bad for a six-year-old boy," the teacher
1 6 The Strength of the Pines
commented. " But where, Bruce, have you ever
seen or heard of such pines? " But Bruce did not
know.
Another puzzling adventure that stuck in Bruce's
memory had happened only a few months after his
arrival at the Square House when a man had taken
him home on trial with the idea of adoption. Adop-
tion, little Bruce had gathered, was something like
heaven, — a glorious and happy end of all trouble
and unpleasantness. Such was the idea he got
from the talk of the other orphans, and even from
the grown-ups who conducted the establishment.
All the incidents and details of the excursion with
this prospective parent were extremely dim and
vague. He did not know to what city he went, nor
had he any recollection whatever of the people he
met there. But he did remember, with remarkable
clearness, the perplexing talk that the man and the
superintendent of the Square House had together
on his return.
" He won't do," the stranger had said. " I tried
him out and he won't fill in in my family. And
I 've fetched him back."
The superintendent must have looked at the little
curly-haired boy with considerable wonder; but he
didn't ask questions. There was no particular
need of them. The man was quite ready to talk,
and the fact that a round-eyed child was listening to
him with both ears open, did not deter him a particle.
" I believe in being frank," the man said, " and I
tell you there 's something vicious in that boy's na-
ture. It came out the very first moment he was in
The Call of the Blood 17
the house, when the Missus was introducing him
to my eight-year-old son. ' This is little Turner,'
she said — and this boy sprang right at him. I 'd
never let little Turner learn to fight, and this boy
was on top of him and was pounding him with his
fists before we could pull him off. Just like a wild-
cat — screaming and sobbing and trying to get at
him again. I did n't understand it at all."
Nor did the superintendent understand; nor —
in these later years — Bruce either.
He was quite a big boy, nearly ten, when he
finally left the Square House. And there was noth-
ing flickering or dim about the memory of this oc-
casion.
A tall, exceedingly slender man sat beside the
window, — a man well dressed but with hard lines
about his mouth and hard eyes. Yet the superin-
tendent seemed particularly anxious to please him.
" You will like this sturdy fellow," he said, as Bruce
was ushered in.
The man's eyes traveled slowly from the child's
curly head to his rapidly growing feet; but no
gleam of interest came into the thin face. " I sup-
pose he '11 do — as good as any. It was the wife's
idea, anyway, you know. What about parentage?
Anything decent at all? "
The superintendent seemed to wait a long time
before answering. Little Bruce, already full of se-
cret conjectures as to his own parentage, thought
that some key might be given him at last. " There
is nothing that we can tell you, Mr. Duncan," he
said at last. " A woman brought him here — with
1 8 The Strength of the Pines
an infant girl — when he was about four. I sup-
pose she was his mother — and she did n't wait to
talk to me. The nurse said that she wore outland-
ish clothes and had plainly had a hard time."
" But she did n't wait -- ? "
" She dropped her children and fled."
A cold little smile flickered at the man's lips.
" It looks rather damnable," he said significantly.
" But I '11 take the little beggar — anyway."
And thus Bruce went to the cold fireside of the
Duncans — a house in a great and distant city
where, in the years that had passed, many
things scarcely worth remembering had transpired.
It was a gentleman's house — as far as the meaning
of the word usually goes — and Bruce had been af-
forded a gentleman's education. There was also,
for a while, a certain amount of rather doubtful
prosperity, a woman who died after a few months
of casual interest in him, and many, many hours of
almost overwhelming loneliness. Also there were
many thoughts such as are not especially good for
the spirits of growing boys.
There is a certain code in all worlds that most
men, sooner or later, find it wisest to adopt. It is
simply the code of forgetfulness. The Square
House from whence Bruce had come had been a
good place to learn this code ; and Bruce — child
though he was — had carried it with him to the
Duncans'. But there were two things he had been
unable to forget. One was the words his foster
father had spoken on accepting him, — words that
at last he had come to understand.
The Call of the Blood 19
A normal child, adopted into a good home, would
not have likely given a second thought to a dim and
problematical disgrace in his unknown and departed
family. He would have found his pride in the
achievements and standing of his foster parents.
But the trouble was that little Bruce had not been
adopted into any sort of home, good or bad. The
place where the Duncans lived was a house, but un-
der no liberal interpretation of the word could it be
called a home. There was nothing homelike in it to
little Bruce. It was n't that there was actual
cruelty to contend with. Bruce had never known
that. But there was utter indifference which per-
haps is worse. And as always, the child filled up
the empty space with dreams. He gave all the
love and worship that was in him to his own family
that he had pictured in imagination. Thus any
disgrace that had come upon them went home to
him very straight indeed.
The other lasting memory was of Linda. She
represented the one living creature in all his as-
semblage of phantoms — the one person with whom
he could claim real kinship. Never a wind blew,
never the sun shone but that he missed her, with a
terrible, aching longing for which no one has ever
been able to find words. He had done a bold thing,
after his first few years with the Duncans. He
planned it long and carried it out with infinite care
as to details. He wrote to Linda, in care of the
superintendent of the orphanage.
The answer only deepened the mystery. Linda
was missing. Whether she had run away, or
2O The Strength of the Pines
whether some one had come by in a closed car and
carried her off as she played on the lawns, the super-
intendent could not tell. They had never been able
to trace her. He had been fifteen then, a tall boy
with rather unusual muscular development, and the
girl was eleven. And in the year nineteen hun-
dred and twenty, ten years after the reply to his
letter, Bruce had heard no word from her. A man
grown, and his boyish dreams pushed back into the
furthest deep recesses of his mind, where they could
no longer turn his eyes away from facts, he had
given up all hope of ever hearing from her again.
" My little sister," he said softly to a memory.
Then bitterness — a whole black flood of it-
would come upon him. " Good Lord, I don't even
know that she was my sister." But now he was
going to find her and his heart was full of joy and
eager anticipation.
Ill
THERE had not been time to make inquiry as to
the land Bruce was going to. He only knew one
thing, — that it was the wilderness. Whether it
was a wilderness of desert or of great forest, he did
not know. Nor had he the least idea what manner
of adventure would be his after he reached the old
woman's cabin; and he did n't care. The fact that
he had no business plans for the future and no finan-
cial resources except a few hundred dollars that
he carried in his pocket did not matter one way or
another. He was willing to spend all the money he
had ; after it was gone, he would take up some work
in life anew.
He had a moment's wonder at the effect his
departure would have upon the financial problem
that had been his father's sole legacy to him. He
laughed a little as he thought of it. Perhaps a
stronger man could have taken hold, could have
erected some sort of a structure upon the ruins,
and remained to conquer after all. But Bruce had
never been particularly adept at business. His
temperament did not seem suited to it. But the
idea that others also — having no business relations
with his father — might be interested in this west-
ern journey of his did not even occur to him. He
would not be missed at his athletic club. He had
22 The Strength of the Pines
scarcely any real friends, and none of his acquaint-
ances kept particularly close track of him.
But the paths men take, seemingly with wholly
different aims, crisscross and become intertwined
much more than Bruce knew. Even as he lay in
his berth, the first sweet drifting of sleep upon him,
he was the subject of a discussion in a far-distant
mountain home; and sleep would not have fallen
so easily and sweetly if he had heard it.
It might have been a different world. Only a
glimpse of it, illumined by the moon, could be seen
through the soiled and besmirched window pane;
but that was enough to tell the story. There were
no tall buildings, lighted by a thousand electric
lights, such as Bruce could see through the windows
of his bedroom at night. The lights that could be
discerned in this strange, dark sky were largely
unfamiliar to Bruce, because of the smoke-clouds
that had always hung above the city where he lived.
There were just stars, but there were so many of
them that the mind was unable to comprehend their
number.
There is a perplexing variation in the appearance
of these twinkling spheres. No man who has trav-
eled widely can escape this fact. Likely enough
they are the same stars, but they put on different
faces. They seem almost insignificant at times, —
dull and dim and unreal. It is not this way with
the stars that peer down through these high for-
ests. Men cannot walk beneath them and be un-
aware of them. They are incredibly large and
The Call of the Blood 23
bright and near, and the eyes naturally lift to them.
There are nights in plenty, in the wild places, where
they seem much more real than the dim, moonlit
ridge or even the spark of a trapper's campfire, far
away. They grow to be companions, too, in time.
Perhaps after many, many years in the wild a man
even attains some understanding of them, learning
their infinite beneficence, and finding in them rare
comrades in loneliness, and beacons on the dim and
intertwining trails.
There was also a moon that cast a little square
of light, like a fairy tapestry, on the floor. It was
not such a moon as leers down red and strange
through the smoke of cities. It was vivid and quite
white, — the wilderness moon that times the hunt-
ing hours of the forest creatures. But the patch
that it cast on the floor was obscured in a moment
because the man who had been musing in the big
chair beside the empty fireplace had risen and
lighted a kerosene lamp.
The light prevented any further scrutiny of the
moon and stars. And what remained to look at was
not nearly so pleasing to the spirit. It was a great,
white-walled room that would have been beautiful
had it not been for certain unfortunate attempts to
beautify it. The walls, that should have been
sweeping and clean, were adorned with gaudily
framed pictures which in themselves were dim and
drab from many summers' accumulation of dust.
There was a stone fireplace, and certain massive,
dust-covered chairs grouped about it. But the
eyes never would have got to these. They would
24 The Strength of the Pines
have been held and fascinated by the face and
the form of the man who had just lighted the
lamp.
No one could look twice at that massive physique
and question its might. He seemed almost gigantic
in the yellow lamplight. In reality he stood six
feet and almost three inches, and his frame was
perfectly in proportion. He moved slowly, lazily,
and the thought flashed to some great monster of
the forest that could uproot a tree with a blow.
The huge muscles rippled and moved under the
flannel shirt. The vast hand looked as if it could
seize the glass bowl of the lamp and crush it like
an eggshell.
The face was huge, big and gaunt of bone; and
particularly one would notice the mouth. It would
be noticed even before the dark, deep-sunken eyes.
It was a bloodhound mouth, the mouth of a man
of great and terrible passions, and there was an un-
mistakable measure of cruelty and savagery about
it. But there was strength, too. No eye could
doubt that. The jaw muscles looked as powerful
as those of a beast of prey. But it was not an ugly
face, for all the brutality of the features. It was
even handsome in the hard, mountain way. One
would notice straight, black hair — the man's age
was about thirty-nine — long over rather dark ears,
and a great, gnarled throat. The words when he
spoke seemed to come from deep within it.
" Come in, Dave," he said.
In this little remark lay something of the man's
power. The visitor had come unannounced. His
The Call of the Blood 25
visit had Leen unexpected. His host had not yet
seen his face. Yet the man knew, before the door
was opened, who it was that had come.
The reason went back to a certain quickening of
the senses that is the peculiar right and property of
most men who are really residents of the wilderness.
And resident, in this case, does not mean merely
one who builds his cabin on the slopes and lives
there until he dies. It means a true relationship
with the wild, an actual understanding. This man
was the son of the wild as much as the wolves that
ran in the packs. The wilderness is a fecund par-
ent, producing an astounding variety of types.
Some are beautiful, many stronger than iron, but
her parentage was never more evident than in the
case of this bronze-skinned giant that called out
through the open doorway. Among certain other
things he had acquired an ability to name and in-
terpret quickly the little sounds of the wilderness
night. Soft though it was, he had heard the sound
of approaching feet in the pine needles. As surely
as he would have recognized the dark face of the
man in the doorway, he recognized the sound as
Dave's step.
The man came in, and at once an observer would
have detected an air of deference in his attitude.
Very plainly he had come to see his chief. He was
a year or two older than his host, less powerful of
physique, and his eyes did not hold quite so straight.
There was less savagery but more cunning in his
sharp features.
He blurted out his news at once. " Old Elmira
26 The Strength of the Pines
has got word down to the settlements at last," he
said.
There was no muscular response in the larger
man. Dave was plainly disappointed. He wanted
his news to cause a stir. It was true, however, that
his host slowly raised his eyes. Dave glanced
away.
" What do you mean? " the man demanded.
" Mean — I mean just what I said. We should
have watched closer. Bill — Young Bill, I mean
- saw a city chap just in the act of going in to see
her. He had come on to the plateaus with his guide
— Wegan was the man's name — and Bill said
he stayed a lot longer than he would have if he
had n't taken a message from her. Then Young
Bill made some inquiries — innocent as you please
— and he found out for sure that this Wegan was
from — just the place we don't want him to be
from. And he '11 carry word sure."
" How long ago was this? "
" Week ago Tuesday."
" And why have you been so long in telling me? "
When Dave's chief asked questions in this tone,
answers always came quickly. They rolled so fast
from the mouth that they blurred and ran together.
* Why, Simon — you ain't been where I could see
you. Anyway, there was nothin' we could have
done."
' There wasn't, eh? I don't suppose you ever
thought that there 's yet two months before we can
clinch this thing for good, and young Folger might
— I say might — have kicking about somewhere in
The Call of the Blood 27
his belongings the very document we Ve all of us
been worrying about for twenty years." Simon
cursed — a single, fiery oath. " I don't suppose
you could have arranged for this Wegan to have
had a hunting accident, could you? Who in the
devil would have thought that yelping old hen could
have ever done it — would have ever kept at it
long enough to reach anybody to carry her message !
But as usual, we are yelling before we 're hurt.
It is n't worth a cussword. Like as not, this Wegan
will never take the trouble to hunt him up. And if
he does — well, it 's nothing to worry about, either.
There is one back door that has been opened many
times to let his people go through, and it may easily
be opened again."
Dave's eyes filled with admiration,. Then he
turned and gazed out through the window. Against
the eastern sky, already wan and pale from the
encroaching dawn, the long ridge of a mountain
stood in vivid and startling silhouette. The edge
of it was curiously jagged with many little up-
right points.
There was only one person who would have been
greatly amazed by that outline of the ridge ; and
the years and distance had obscured her long ago.
This was a teacher at an orphanage in a distant cityr
who once had taken a crude drawing from the
hands of a child. Here was the original at last.
It was the same ridge, covered with pines, that little
Bruce had drawn.
IV
THE train came to a sliding halt at Deer Creek,
paused an infinitesimal fraction of a second, and
roared on in its ceaseless journey. That infinitesi-
mal fraction was long enough for Bruce, poised on
the bottom step of a sleeping car, to swing down on
to the gravel right-of-way. His bag, hurled by a
sleepy porter, followed him.
He turned first to watch the vanishing tail light,
speeding so swiftly into the darkness ; and curiously
all at once it blinked out. But it was not that the
switchmen were neglectful of their duties. In
this certain portion of the Cascades the railroad
track is constructed something after the manner of
a giant screw, coiling like a great serpent up the
ridges, and the train had simply vanished around
a curve.
Duncan's next impression was one of infinite sol-
itude. He hadn't read any guidebooks about
Deer Creek, and he had expected some sort of
town. A western mining camp, perhaps, where the
windows of a dance hall would gleam through the
darkness ; or one of those curious little mushroom-
growth cities that are to be found all over the West.
But at Deer Creek there was one little wooden
structure with only three sides, — the opening fac-
ing the track. It was evidently the waiting room
The Call of the Blood 29
used by the mountain men as they waited for their
local trains.
There were no porters to carry his bag. There
were no shouting officials. His only companions
were the stars and the moon and, farther up the
slope, certain tall trees that tapered to incredible
points almost in the region where the stars began.
The noise of the train died quickly. It vanished
almost as soon as the dot of red that had been its
tail light. It was true that he heard a faint puls-
ing far below him, a sound that was probably the
chug of the steam, but it only made an effective
background for the silence. It was scarcely more
to be heard than the pulse of his own blood; and
as he waited even this faded and died away.
The moon cast his shadow on the yellow grass
beside the crude station, and a curious flood of sen-
sations— scarcely more tangible than its silver
light — came over him. The moment had a qual-
ity of enchantment; and why he did not know.
His throat suddenly filled, a curious weight and
pain came to his eyelids, a quiver stole over his
nerves. He stood silent with lifted face, — a
strange figure in that mystery of moonlight.
The whole scene, for causes deeper than any
words may ever seek and reveal, moved him past any
experience in his life. It was wholly new. When
he had gone to sleep in his berth, earlier that same
night, the train had been passing through a level,
fertile valley that might have been one of the river
bottoms beyond the Mississippi. When darkness
had come down he had been in a great city in the
30 The Strength of the Pines
northern part of the State, — a noisy, busy place
that was not greatly different from the city whence
he had come. But now he seemed in a different
world.
Possibly, in the long journey to the West, he
had passed through forest before. But some way
their appeal had not got to him. He was behind
closed windows, his thoughts had been busy with
reading and other occupations of travel. There
had been no shading off, no gradations; he had
come straight from a great seat of civilization to the
heart of the wilderness.
He turned about until the wind was in his face.
It was full of fragrances, — strange, indescribable
smells that seemed to call up a forgotten world.
They carried a message to him, but as yet he had n't
made out its meaning. He only knew it was some-
thing mysterious and profound: great truths that
flickered, like dim lights, in his consciousness, but
whose outline he could not quite discern. They
went straight home to him, those night smells from
the forest. One of them was a balsam : a fragrance
that once experienced lingers ever in the memory
and calls men back to it in the end. Those who die
in its fragrance, just as those who go to sleep, feel
sure of having pleasant dreams. There were other
smells too — delicate perfumes from mountain
flowers that were deep-hidden in the grass — and
many others, the nature of which he could not even
guess.
Perhaps there were sounds, but they only seemed
part of the silence. The faintest rustle in the world
The Call of the Blood 3 1
reached him from the forests above of many little
winds playing a running game between the trunks,
and the stir of the Little People, moving in their
midnight occupations. Each of these sounds had
its message for Bruce. They all seemed to be try-
ing to tell him something, to make clear some great
truth that was dawning in his consciousness.
He was not in the least afraid. He felt at peace
as never before. He picked up his bag, and with
stealing steps approached the long slope behind.
The moon showed him a fallen log, and he found a
comfortable seat on the ground beside it, his back
against its bark. Then he waited for the dawn to
come out.
Not even Bruce knew or understood all the
thoughts that came over him in that lonely wait.
But he did have a peculiar sense of expectation, a
realization that the coming of the dawn would bring
him a message clearer than all these messages of
fragrance and sound. The moon made wide silver
patches between the distant trees; but as yet the
forest had not opened its secrets to him. As yet it
was but a mystery, a profundity of shadows and
enchantment that he did not understand.
The night hours passed. The sense of peace
seemed to deepen on the man. He sat relaxed, his
brown face grave, his eyes lifted. The stars began
to dim and draw back farther into the recesses of the
sky. The round outline of the moon seemed less
pronounced. And a faint ribbon of light began
to grow in the east.
It widened. The light grew. The night wind
32 The Strength of the Pines
played one more little game between the tree trunks
and slipped away to the Home of Winds that lies
somewhere above the mountains. The little night
sounds were slowly stilled.
Bruce closed his eyes, not knowing why. His
blood was leaping in his veins. An unfamiliar ex-
citement, almost an exultation, had come upon him.
He lowered his head nearly to his hands that rested
in his lap, then waited a full five minutes more.
Then he opened his eyes. The light had grown
around him. His hands were quite plain. Slowly,
as a man raises his eyes to a miracle, he lifted his
face.
The forest was no longer obscured in darkness.
The great trees had emerged, and only the dusk as
of twilight was left between. He saw them plainly,
-their symmetrical forms, their declining limbs,
their tall tops piercing the sky. He saw them as
they were, — those ancient, eternal symbols and
watchmen of the wilderness. And he knew them at
last, acquaintances long forgotten but remembered
now.
" The pines! " he cried. He leaped to his feet
with flashing eyes. " I have come back to the
pines! "
THE dawn revealed a narrow road along the
bank of Deer Creek, — a brown little wanderer
which, winding here and there, did not seem to
know exactly where it wished to go. It seemed to
follow the general direction of the creek bed; it
seemed to be a prying, restless little highway, curi-
ous about things in general as the wild creatures
that sometimes made tracks in its dust, thrusting
now into a heavy thicket, now crossing the creek to
examine a green and grassy bank on the opposite
side, now taking an adventurous tramp about the
shoulder of a hill, circling back for a drink in the
creek and hurrying on again. It made singular
loops; it darted off at a right and left oblique; it
made sudden spurts and turns seemingly without
reason or sense, and at last it dimmed away into the
fading mists of early morning. Bruce did n't know
which direction to take, whether up or down the
creek.
He gave the problem a moment's thought.
' Take the road up the Divide," Barney Wegan
had said; and at once Bruce knew that the course
lay up the creek, rather than down. A divide
means simply the High places between one water-
shed and another, and of course Trail's End lay
somewhere beyond the source of the stream. The
creek itself was apparently a sub-tributary of the
Rogue, the great river to the south.
34 The Strength of the Pines
There was something pleasing to his spirit in the
sight of the little stream, tumbling and rippling
down its rocky bed. He had no vivid memories of
seeing many waterways. The river that flowed
through the city whence he had come had not been
like this at all. It had been a great, slow-moving
sheet of water, the banks of which were lined with
factories and warehouses. The only lining of the
banks of this little stream were white-barked trees,
lovely groves with leaves of glossy green. It was
a cheery, eager little waterway, and more than once
— as he went around a curve in the road — it af-
forded him glimpses of really striking beauty.
Sometimes it was just a shimmer of its waters be-
neath low-hanging bushes, sometimes a distant
cataract, and once or twice a long, still place on
which the shadows were still deep.
These sloughs were obviously the result of dams,
and at first he could not understand what had been
the purpose of dam-building in this lonely region.
There seemed to be no factories needing water
power, no slow-moving mill wheels. He left the
road to investigate. And he chuckled with delight
when he knew the truth.
These dams had not been the work of men at all.
Rather they were structures laid down by those
curious little civil engineers, the beavers. The
cottonwood trees had been felled so that the thick
branches had lain across the waters, and in their
own secret ways the limbs had been matted and
caked until no water could pass through. True,
the beavers themselves did not emerge for him to
The Call of the Blood 35
converse with. Perhaps they were busy at their
under-water occupations, and possibly the trappers
who sooner or later penetrate every wilderness had
taken them all away. He looked along the bank for
further evidence of the beavers' work.
Wonderful as the dams were, he found plenty of
evidence that the beavers had not always used to
advantage the crafty little brains that nature has
given them. They had made plenty of mistakes.
But these very blunders gave Bruce enough delight
almost to pay for the extra work they had occa-
sioned. After all, he considered, human beings in
their works are often just as short-sighted. For
instance, he found tall trees lying rotting and out
of reach, many feet back from, the stream. The
beavers had evidently felled them in high water,
forgetting that the stream dwindled in summer and
the trees would be of no use to them. They had
been an industrious colony! He found short poles
of cottonwood sharpened at the end, as if the little
fur bearers had intended them for braces, but which
— through some wilderness tragedy — had never
been utilized.
But Bruce was in a mood to be delighted, these
early morning hours. He was on the way to
Linda; a dream was about to come true. The
whole adventure was of the most thrilling and joy-
ous anticipations. He did not feel the load of his
heavy suitcase. It was nothing to his magnificent
young strength. And all at once he beheld an
amazing change in the appearance of the stream.
It had abruptly changed to a stream of melted,
36 The Strength of the Pines
shimmering silver. The waters broke on the rocks
with opalescent spray ; the whole coloring was sug-
gestive of the vivid tints of a Turner landscape.
The waters gleamed ; they danced and sparkled as
they sped about the boulders of the river bed; the
leaves shimmered above them. And it was all be-
cause the sun had risen at last above the mountain
range and was shining down.
At first Bruce could hardly believe that just sun-
light could effect such a transformation. For no
other reason than that he could n't resist doing so,
he left his bag on the road and crept down to the
water's edge.
He stood very still. It seemed to him that some
one had told him, far away and long ago, that if he
wished to see miracles he had only to stand very still.
Not to move a muscle, so that his vivid shadow
would not even waver, It is a trait possessed by all
men of the wilderness, but it takes time for city men
to learn it. He waited a long time. And all at
once the shining surface of a deep pool below him
broke with a fountain of glittering spray.
Something that was like light itself flung into the
air and down again with a splash. Bruce shouted
then. He simply couldn't help it. And all the
tin. 5 there was a strange straining and travail in his
brain, as if it were trying to give birth to a memory
from long ago. He knew now what had made that
glittering arc. Such a common thing, — it was
singular that it should yield him such delight. It
was a trout, leaping for an insect that had fallen
on the waters.
The Call of the Blood 37
It was strange that he had such a sense of famil-
iarity with trout. True, he had heard Barney We-
gan tell of them. He had listened to many tales
of the way they seized a fly, how the reel would spin,
and how they would fight to absolute exhaustion
before they would yield to the landing net. ' The
King among fish," Barney had called them. Yet
the tales seemingly had meant little to him then.
His interest in them had been superficial only ; and
they had seemed as distant and remote as the mar-
supials of Australia. But it was n't this way now.
He had a sense of long and close acquaintance, of
an interest such as men have in their own townsmen.
He went on, and the forest world opened before
him. Once a flock of grouse — a hen and a dozen
half -grown chickens — scurried away through the
underbrush at the sound of his step. One instant,
and he had a clear view of the entire covey. The
next, and they had vanished like so many puffs of
smoke. He had a delicious game of hide-and-seek
with them through the coverts, but he was out-
classed in every particular. He knew that the
birds were all within forty feet of him, each of them
pressed flat to the brown earth, but in this maze of
light and shadow he could not detect their outline.
Nature has been kind to the grouse family in the
way of protective coloration. He had to give up
the search and continue up the creek for further
adventure.
Once a pair of mallards winged by on a straight
course above his head. Their sudden appearance
rather surprised him. These beautiful game birds
38 The Strength of the Pines
are usually habitants of the lower lakes and marshes,
not rippling mountain streams. He did n't know
that a certain number of these winged people nested
every year along the Rogue River, far below, and
made rapturous excursions up and down its tribu-
taries. Mallards do not have to have aeroplanes
to cover distance quickly. They are the very mas-
ters of the aerial lanes, and in all probability this
pair had come forty miles already that morning.
Where they would be at dark no man could guess.
Their wings whistled down to him, and it seemed to
him that the drake stretched down his bright green
head for a better look. Then he spurted ahead,
faster than ever.
Once, at a distance, Bruce caught a glimpse of a
pair of peculiar, little, sawed-off, plump-breasted
ducks that wagged their tails, as if in signals, in a
still place above a dam. He made a wide circle,
intending to wheel back to the creekside for a closer
inspection of the singular flirtation of those bob-
bing, fanlike tails. He rather thought he could
outwit these little people, at least. But when he
turned back to the water's edge they were nowhere
to be seen.
If he had had more experience with the creatures
of the wild he could have explained this mysterious
disappearance. These little ducks — " ruddies "
the sportsmen call them — have advantages other
than an extra joint in their tails. One of them
seems to be a total and unprincipled indifference to
the available supply of oxygen. When they wish
to go out of sight they simply duck beneath the
The Call of the Blood 39
water and stay apparently as long as they desire.
Of course they have to come up some time — but
usually it is just the tip of a bill — like the top of a
river-bottom weed, thrust above the surface.
Bruce gaped in amazement, but he chuckled again
when he discovered his birds farther up the creek,
just as far distant from him as ever.
The sun rose higher, and he began to feel its
power. But it was a kindly heat. The tempera-
ture was much higher than was commonly met in
the summers of the city, but there was little mois-
ture in the air to make it oppressive. The sweat
came out on his bronze face, but he never felt better
in his life. There was but one great need, and that
was breakfast.
A man of his physique feels hunger quickly. The
sensation increased in intensity, and the suitcase
grew correspondingly heavy. And all at once he
stopped short in the road. The impulse along his
nerves to his leg muscles was checked, like an elec-
tric current at the closing of a switch, and an in-
stinct of unknown origin struggled for expression
within him.
In an instant he had it. He did n't know whence
it came. It was nothing he had read or that any
one had told him. It seemed to be rather the re-
sult of some experience in his own immediate life,
an occurrence of so long ago that he had forgotten it.
He suddenly knew where he could find his break-
fast. There was no need of toiling farther on an
empty stomach in this verdant season of the year.
He set his suitcase down, and with the confidence
40 The Strength of the Pines
of a man who hears the dinner call in his own home,
he struck off into the thickets beside the creek bed.
Instinct — and really, after all, instinct is nothing
but memory — led his steps true.
He glanced here and there, not even wondering
at the singular fact that he did not know exactly
what manner of food he was seeking. In a mo-
ment he came to a growth of thorn-covered bushes,
a thicket that only the she-bear knew how to pene-
trate. But it was enough for Bruce just to stand
at its edges. The bushes were bent down with a
load of delicious berries.
He wasn't in the least surprised. He had
known that he would find them. Always, at this
season of the year, the woods were rich with them;
one only had to slip quickly through the back
door — while the mother's eye was elsewhere — to
find enough of them not only to pack the stomach
full but to stain and discolor most of the face. It
seemed a familiar thing to be plucking the juicy
berries and cramming them into his mouth, imper-
vious as the old she-bear to the remonstrance of
the thorns. But it seemed to him that he reached
them easier than he expected. Either the bushes
were not so tall as he remembered them, or — since
his first knowledge of them — his own stature had
increased.
When he had eaten the last berry he could pos-
sibly hold, he went to the creek to drink. He lay
down beside a still pool, and the water was cold to
his lips. Then he rose at the sound of an approach-
ing motor car behind him.
The Call of the Blood 41
The driver — evidently a cattleman — stopped
his car and looked at Bruce with some curiosity. He
marked the perfectly fitting suit of dark flannel, the
trim, expensive shoes that were already dust-
stained, the silken shirt on which a juicy berry had
been crushed. " Howdy," the man said after the
western fashion. He was evidently simply feel-
ing companionable and was looking for a moment's
chat. It is a desire that often becomes very urgent
and most real after enough lonely days in the wil-
derness.
" How do you do," Bruce replied. " How far
to Martin's store? "
The man filled his pipe with great care before he
answered. " Jump in the car," he replied at last,
" and I '11 show you. I 'm going up that way my-
self."
VI
MARTIN'S was a typical little mountain store,
containing a small sample of almost everything
under the sun and built at the forks in the road.
The ranchman let Bruce off at the store; then
turned up the right-hand road that led to certain
bunch-grass lands to the east. Bruce entered
slowly, and the little group of loungers gazed at
him with frank curiosity.
Only one of them was of a type sufficiently dis-
tinguished so that Brace's own curiosity was
aroused. This was a huge, dark man who stood
alone almost at the rear of the building, — a veri-
table giant with savage, bloodhound lips and deep-
sunken eyes. There was a quality in his posture
that attracted Bruce's attention at once. No one
could look at him and doubt that he was a power in
these mountain realms. He seemed perfectly se-
cure in his great strength and wholly cognizant of
the hate and fear, and at the same time, the strange
sort of admiration with which the others regarded
him.
He was dressed much as the other mountain men
who had assembled in the store. He wore a flan-
nel shirt over his gorilla chest, and corduroy trou-
sers stuffed into high, many-seamed riding boots.
A dark felt hat was crushed on to his huge head.
The Call of the Blood 43
But there was an aloofness about the man; and
Bruce realized at once he had taken no part in the
friendly gossip that had been interrupted by his en-
trance.
The dark eyes were full upon Bruce's face. He
felt them — just as if they had the power of actual
physical impact — the instant that he was inside the
door. Nor was it the ordinary look of careless
speculation or friendly interest. Mountain men
have not been taught it is not good manners to stare,
but no traveler who falls swiftly into the spirit of
the forest ordinarily resents their open inspection.
But this look was different. It was such that no
man, to whom self-respect is dear, could possibly
lisregard. It spoke clearly as words.
Bruce flushed^and his blood made
"He slowly turned. ' His^gazemoved unti
,;it rested full upon the man's eyes. It seemed to
Bruce that the room grew instantly quiet. The
merchant no longejJtiedr-Tip-4iis bundles at the
counter. The watching mountamih^uthat he be-
held out of the corners of his eyes all seem
standing in peculiar fixed attitudes, waiting for
some sort of explosion. It took all of Bruce's
strength to hold that gaze. The moment was
charged with a mysterious suspense.
The stranger's face changed too. He did not
flush, however. His lips curled ever so slightly, re-
vealing an instant's glimpse of strong, rather well-
kept teeth. His eyes were narrowing too ; and they
seemed to come to life with singular sparkles and
glowings between the lids.
44 The Strength of the Pines
" Well? " he suddenly demanded. Every man
in the room — except one — started. The one ex-
ception was Bruce himself. He was holding hard
on his nerve control, and he only continued to stare
coldly.
" Are you the merchant? " Bruce asked.
" No, I ain't," the other replied. " You usually
look for the merchant behind the counter."
There was no smile on the faces of the waiting
mountain men, usually to be expected when one of
their number achieves repartee on a tenderfoot.
Nevertheless, the tension was broken. Bruce
turned to the merchant.
" I would like to have you tell me," he said quite
clearly, " the way to Mrs. Ross's cabin."
The merchant seemed to wait a long time before
replying. His eye stole to the giant's face, found
the lips curled in a smile; then he flushed. ' Take
the left-hand road," he said with a trace of defiance
in his tone. " It soon becomes a trail, but keep
right on going up it. At the fork in the trail you '11
find her cabin."
" How far is it, please? "
' Two hours' walk ; you can make it easy by four
o'clock."
" Thank you." His eyes glanced over the stock
of goods and he selected a few edibles to give him
strength for the walk. " I '11 leave my suitcase
here if I may," he said, " and will call for it later."
He turned to go.
" Wait just a minute," a voice spoke behind him.
It was a commanding tone — implying the expec-
The Call of the Blood 45
tation of obedience. Bruce half turned. " Simon
wants to talk to you," the merchant explained.
" I '11 walk with you a way and show you the
road," Simon continued. The room seemed deathly
quiet as the two men went out together.
They walked side by side until a turn of the road
took them out of eye-range of the store. '* This is
the road," Simon said. " All you have to do is fol-
low it. Cabins are not so many that you could mis-
take it. But the main thing is — whether or not you
want to go."
Bruce had no misunderstanding about the man's
meaning. It was simply a threat, nothing more
nor less.
" I Ve come a long way to go to that cabin," he
replied. " I 'm not likely to turn off now."
" There 's nothing worth seeing when you get
there. Just an old hag — a wrinkled old dame that
looks like a witch."
Bruce felt a deep and little understood resent-
ment at the words. Yet since he had as yet estab-
lished no relations with the woman, he had no
grounds for silencing the man. " I '11 have to de-
cide that," he replied. " I 'm going to see some one
else, too."
" Some one named — Linda? "
" Yes. You seem quite interested."
They were standing face to face in the trail. For
once Bruce was glad of his unusual height. He did
not have to raise his eyes greatly to look squarely
into Simon's. Both faces were flushed, both set;
and the eyes of the older man brightened slowly.
46 The Strength of the Pines
" I am interested," Simon replied. " You 're a
tenderfoot. You 're fresh from cities. You 're go-
ing up there to learn things that won't be any pleas-
ure to you. You 're going into the real mountains
— a man's land such as never was a place for tender-
feet. A good many things can happen up there. A
good many things have happened up there. I warn
you — go back! "
Bruce smiled, just the faint flicker of a smile, but
Simon's eyes narrowed when he saw it. The dark
face lost a little of its insolence. He knew men, this
huge son of the wilderness, and he knew that no
coward could smile in such a moment as this. He
was accustomed to implicit obedience and was not
used to seeing men smile when he uttered a threat.
;< I 've come too far to go back," Bruce told him.
" Nothing can turn me."
" Men have been turned before, on trails like
this," Simon told him. " Don't misunderstand me.
I advised you to go back before, and I usually don't
take time or trouble to advise any one. Now I tell
you to go back. This is a man's land, and we don't
want any tender feet here."
' The trail is open," Bruce returned. It was not
his usual manner to speak in quite this way. He
seemed at once to have fallen into the vernacular
of the wilderness of which symbolic reference has
such a part. Strange as the scene was to him, it was
in some way familiar too. It was as if this meeting
had been ordained long ago ; that it was part of an
inexorable destiny that the two should be talking
together, face to face, on this winding mountain
The Call of the Blood 47
road. Memories — all vague, all unrecognized —
thronged through him.
Many times, during the past years, he had wak-
ened from curious dreams that in the light of day
he had tried in vain to interpret. He was never able
to connect them with any remembered experience.
Now it was as if one of these dreams were coming
true. There was the same silence about him, the
dark forests beyond, the ridges stretching ever.
There was some great foe that might any instant
overwhelm him.
"I guess you heard me/' Simon said; "I told
you to go back."
"And I hope you heard me too. I 'm going on.
I have n't any more time to give you."
" And I 'm not going to take any more, either.
But let me make one thing plain. No man, told to
go back by me, ever has a chance to be told again.
This ain't your cities — up here. There ain't any
policeman on every corner. The woods are big, and
all kinds of things can happen in them — and be
swallowed up — as I swallow these leaves in my
hand."
His great arm reached out with incredible power
and seized a handful of leaves off a near-by shrub.
It seemed to Bruce that they crushed like fruit and
stained the dark skin.
" What is done up here is n't put in the news-
papers down below. We 're mountain men ; we Ve
lived up here as long as men have lived in the West.
We have our own way of doing things, and our own
law. Think once more about going back."
48 The Strength of the Pines
"I Ve already decided. I 'm going on."
Once more they stood, eyes meeting eyes on the
trail, and Simon's face was darkening with passion.
Bruce knew that his hands were clenching, and his
own muscles bunched and made ready to resist any
kind of attack.
But Simon didn't strike. He laughed instead,
- a single deep note of utter and depthless scorn.
Then he drew back and let Bruce pass on up the
road.
VII
BKUCE could n't mistake the cabin. At the end
of the trail he found it, — a little shack of unpainted
boards with a single door and a single window.
He stood a moment in the sunlight. His shadow
was already long behind him, and the mountains
had that curious deep blue of late afternoon. The
pine needles were soft under his feet; the later-after-
noon silence was over the land. He could not guess
what was his destiny behind that rude door. It was
a moment long waited ; for one of the few times in
his life he was trembling with excitement. He felt
as if a key, long lost, was turning in the doorway of
understanding.
He walked nearer and tapped with his knuckles
on the door.
If the forests have one all-pervading quality it is
silence. Of course the most silent time is at night,
but just before sunset, when most of the forest crea-
tures are in their mid-afternoon sleep, any noise is
a rare thing. What sound there is carries far and
seems rather out of place. Bruce could picture the
whole of the little drama that followed his knock by
just the faint sounds — inaudible in a less silent
land — that reached him from behind the door. At
first it was just a start; then a short exclamation
in the hollow, half -whispering voice of old, old age.
50 The Strength of the Pines
A moment more of silence — as if a slow-moving,
aged brain were trying to conjecture who stood out-
side — then the creaking of a chair as some one rose.
The last sounds were of a strange hobbling toward
him, — a rustle of shoes half dragged on the floor
and the intermittent tapping of a cane.
The face that showed so dimly in the shadowed
room looked just as Bruce had expected, — wrin-
kled past belief, lean and hawk-nosed from age.
The hand that rested on the cane was like a bird's
claw, the skin blue and hard and dry. There were
a few strands of hair drawn back over her lean head,
but all its color had faded out long ago. She stood
bowed over her cane.
Yet in that first instant Bruce had an inexplicable
impression of being in the presence of a power. He
did not have the wave of pity with which one usually
greets the decrepit. And at first he didn't know
why. But soon he grew accustomed to the shadows
and he could see the woman's eyes. Then he under-
stood.
They were set deep behind grizzled brows, but
they glowed like coals. There was no other word.
They were not the eyes of one whom time is about
to conquer. Her bodily strength was gone; any
personal beauty that she might have had was ashes
long and long ago, but some great fire burned in her
yet. As far as bodily appearance went the grave
should have claimed her long since ; but a dauntless
spirit had sustained her. For, as all men know,
the power of the spirit has never yet been meas-
ured.
The Call of the Blood 5 1
She blinked in the light. "Who is it?" she
croaked.
Bruce did not answer. He had not prepared a
reply for this question. But it was not needed.
The woman leaned forward, and a vivid light began
to dawn in her dark, furrowed face.
Even to Bruce, already succumbed to this atmos-
phere of mystery into which his adventure had led
him, that dawning light was the single most star-
tling phenomenon he had ever beheld. It is very
easy to imagine a radiance upon the face. But in
reality, most all facial expression is simply a change
in the contour of lines. But this was not a case of
imagination now. The witchlike face seemed to
gleam with a white flame. And Bruce knew that
his coming was the answer to the prayer of a whole
lifetime. It was a thought to sober him. No small
passion, no weak desire, no prayer that time or
despair could silence could effect such a light as
this.
" Bruce," he said simply. It did not even occur
to him to use the surname of Duncan. It was a
name of a time and sphere already forgotten. " I
don't know what my real last name is."
"Bruce — Bruce," the woman whispered. She
stretched a palsied hand to him as if it would feel
his flesh to reassure her of its reality. The wild
light in her eyes pierced him, burning like chemical
rays, and a great flood of feeling yet unknown and
unrecognized swept over him. He saw her snags
of teeth as her dry lips half -opened. He saw the
exultation in her wrinkled, lifted face. " Oh,
52 The Strength of the Pines
praises to His Everlasting Name!" she cried.
"Oh, Glory— Glory to on High!"
And this was not blasphemy. The words came
from the heart. No matter how terrible the passion
from which they sprang, whether it was such evil as
would cast her to hell, such a cry as this could not go
unheard. The strength seemed to go out of her as
water flows. She rocked on her cane, and Bruce,
thinking she was about to fall, seized her shoulders.
" At last — at last," she cried. " You 've come at
last."
She gripped herself, as if trying to find renewed
strength. " Go at once," she said, " to the end of
the Pine-needle Trail. It leads from behind the
cabin."
He tried to emerge from the dreamlike mists that
had enveloped him. " How far is it? " he asked her
steadily.
" To the end of Pine-needle Trail," she rocked
again, clutched for one of his brown hands, and
pressed it between hers.
Then she raised it to her dry lips. Bruce could
not keep her from it. And after an instant more
he did not attempt to draw it from her embrace. In
the darkness of that mountain cabin, in the shadow
of the eternal pines, he knew that some great drama
of human life and love and hatred was behind the
action ; and lie knew with a knowledge unimpeach-
able that it would be only insolence for him to try
further to resist it. Its meaning went too deep for
him to see ; but it filled him with a great and won-
dering awe.
The Call of the Blood 53
Then he turned away, up the Pine-needle Trail.
Clear until the deeper forest closed around him her
voice still followed him, — a strange croaking in the
afternoon silence. " At last," he heard her crying.
" At last, at last."
VIII
IN almost a moment, Duncan was out of the
thickets and into the big timber, for really the first
time. In his journey up the mountain road and on
the trail that led to the old woman's cabin, he had
been many times in the shade of the tall evergreens,
but always there had been some little intrusion of
civilization, some hint of the works of man that had
kept him from the full sense of the majesty of the
wild. At first it had been the gleaming railroad
tracks, and then a road that had been built with
blasting and shovels. To get the full effect of the
forest one must be able to behold wide-stretching
vistas, and that had been impossible heretofore be-
cause of the brush thickets. But this was the virgin
forest. As far as he could see there was nothing
but the great pines climbing up the long slope of
the ridge. He caught glimpses of them in the vales
at either side, and their dark tops made a curious
background at the very extremity of his vision.
They stood straight and aloof, and they were very
old.
He fell into their spirit at once. The half-
understood emotions that had flooded him in the
cabin below died within him. The great calm that is,
after all, the all-pervading quality of the big pines
came over him. It is always this way. A man
The Call of the Blood 55
knows solitude, his thoughts come clear, superficial-
ities are left behind in the lands of men. Bruce
was rather tremulous and exultant as he crept
softly up the trail.
It was the last lap of his journey. At the end
of the trail he would find — Linda! And it seemed
quite fitting that she would be waiting there, where
the trail began, in the wildest heart of the pine
woods. He was quite himself once more, — care-
free, delighting in all the little manifestations of
the wild life that began to stir about him.
No experience of his existence had ever yielded
the same pleasure as that long walk up the trail.
Every curve about the shoulder of a hill, every still
glen into which he dipped, every ridge that he sur-
mounted wakened curious memories within him and
stirred him in little secret ways under the skin. His
delight grew upon him. It was a dream coming
true. Always, it seemed to him, he had carried in
his mind a picture of this very land, a sort of
dream place that was a reality at last. He had
known just how it would be. The wind made the
same noise in the tree tops that he expected. Yet
it was such a little sound that it could never be heard
in a city at all. His senses had already been sharp-
ened by the silence and the calm.
He had always known how the pine shadows
would fall across the carpet of needles. The trees
themselves were the same grave companions that he
had expected, but his delight was all the more be-
cause of his expectations.
He began to catch glimpses of the smaller forest
56 The Strength of the Pines
creatures, — the Little People that are such a de-
light to all real lovers of the wilderness. Sometimes
it was a chipmunk, trusting to his striped skin —
blending perfectly with the light and shadow — to
keep him out of sight. These are quivering, rest-
less, ever- frightened little folk, and heaven alone
knows what damage they may do to the roots of a
tree. But Bruce was n't in the mood to think of
forest conservation to-day. He had left a number
of his notions in the city where he had acquired
them, — and this little, bright-eyed rodent in the
tree roots had almost the same right to the forests
that he had himself. Before, he had a measure of
the same arrogance with which most men — realiz-
ing the dominance of their breed — regard the lesser
people of the wild; but something of a disastrous
nature had happened to it. He spoke gayly to the
chipmunk and passed on.
As the trail climbed higher, the sense of wilder-
ness became more pronounced. Even the trees
seemed larger and more majestic, and the glimpses
of the wild people were more frequent. The birds
stopped their rattle-brained conversation and stared
at him with frank curiosity. The grouse let him get
closer before they took to cover.
Of course the bird life was not nearly so varied as
in the pretty groves of the Middle West. Most
birds are gentle people, requiring an easy and pleas-
ant environment, and these stern, stark mountains
were no place for them. Only the hardier creatures
could flourish here. Their songs would have been
out of place in the great silences and solemnity of
The Call of the Blood 57
the evergreen forest. This was no land for weak-
lings. Bruce knew that as well as he knew that his
legs were under him. The few birds he saw were
mostly of the hardier varieties, — hale-fellows-well-
met and cheerful members of the lower strata in
bird society. " Good old roughnecks," he said to
them, with an intuitive understanding.
That was just the name for them, — a word that
is just beginning to appear in dictionaries. They
were rough in manner and rough in speech, and
they pretended to be rougher than they were. Yet
Bruce liked them. He exulted in the easy freedom
of their ways. Creatures have to be rough to exist
in and love such wilderness as this. Life gets down
to a matter of cold metal, — some brass but mostly
iron ! He rather imagined that they could be fairly
capable thieves if occasion arose, making off with
the edibles he had bought without a twitch of a
feather. They squawked and scolded at him, after
their curiosity was satisfied. They said the most
shocking things they could think of and seemed to
rejoice in it. He did n't know their breeds, yet he
felt that they were old friends. They were rather
large birds, mostly of the families of jays and mag-
pies.
The hours passed. The trail grew dimmer. Now
it was just a brown serpent in the pine needles, coil-
ing this way and that, — but he loved every foot of
it. It dipped down to a little stream, of which the
blasting sun of summer had made only a succession
of shallow pools. Yet the water was cold to his lips.
And he knew that little brook trout — waiting until
58 The Strength of the Pines
the fall rains should make a torrent of their tiny
stream and thus deliver them — were gazing at him
while he drank.
The trail followed the creek a distance, and at
last he found the spring that was its source. It was
only a small spring, lost in a bed of deep, green
ferns. He sat down to rest and to eat part of his
lunch. The little wind had died, leaving a profound
silence.
By a queer pounding of his blood Bruce knew
that he was in the high altitudes. He had already
come six miles from the cabin. The hour was about
six-thirty; in two hours more it would be too dark
to make his way at all.
He examined the mud about the spring, and there
was plenty of evidence that the forest creatures had
passed that way. Here was a little triangle where
a buck had stepped, and farther away he found two
pairs of deer tracks, — evidently those of a doe with
fawn. A wolf had stopped to cool his heated tongue
in the waters, possibly in the middle of some terrible
hunt in the twilight hours.
There was a curious round track, as if of a giant
cat, a little way distant in the brown earth. It told
a story plainly. A cougar — one of those great
felines that is perhaps better called puma — had
had an ambush there a few nights before. Bruce
wondered what wilderness tragedy had transpired
when the deer came to drink. Then he found an-
other huge abrasion in the mud that puzzled him
still more.
At first he could n't believe that it was a track.
The Call of the Blood 59
The reason was simply that the size of the thing
was incredible, — as if some one had laid a flour
sack in the mud and taken it up again. He did
not think of any of the modern-day forest creatures
as being of such proportions. It was very stale
and had been almost obliterated by many days of
sun. Perhaps he had been mistaken in thinking it
an imprint of a living creature. He went to his
knees to examine it.
But in one instant he knew that he had not been
mistaken. It was a track not greatly different from
that of an enormous human foot; and the separate
toes were entirely distinct. It was a bear track, of
course, but one of such size that the general run
of little black bears that inhabited the hills could
almost use it for a den of hibernation!
His thought went back to his talk with Barney
Wegan; and he remembered that the man had
spoken of a great, last grizzly that the mountaineers
had named " The Killer." No other animal but the
great grizzly bear himself could have made such a
track as this. Bruce wondered if the beast had yet
been killed.
He got up and went on, — farther toward Trail's
End. He walked more swiftly now, for he hoped
to reach the end of Pine-needle Trail before night-
fall, but he had no intention of halting in case night
came upon him before he reached it. He had waited
too long already to find Linda.
The land seemed ever more familiar. A high
peak thrust a white head above a distant ridge, and
it appealed to him almost like the face of an old
60 The Strength of the Pines
friend. Sometime — long and long ago — he had
gazed often at a white peak of a mountain thrust
above a pine-covered ridge.
Another hour ended the day's sunlight. The
shadows fell quickly, but it was a long time yet until
darkness. He yet might make the trail-end. He
gave no thought to fatigue. In the first place, he
had stood up remarkably well under the day's tramp
for no other reason than that he had always made
a point of keeping in the best of physical condition.
Besides, there was something more potent than mere
physical strength to sustain him now. It was the
realization of the nearing end of the trail, — a
knowledge of tremendous revelations that would
come to him in a few hours more.
Already great truths were taking shape in his
brain; he only needed a single sentence of explana-
tion to connect them all together. He began to feel
a growing excitement and impatience.
For the first time he began to notice a strange
breathlessness in the air. He paused, just for an
instant, his face lifted to the wind. He did not
realize that all his senses were at razor edge, trying
to interpret the messages that the wind brought.
He felt that the forest was wakening. A new stir
and impulse had come in the growing shadows, All
at once he understood. It was the hunting hour.
Yet even this seemed familiar. Always, it seemed
to him, he had known this same strange thrill at the
fall of darkness, the same sense of deepening mys-
tery. The jays no longer gossiped in the shrubs.
They had been silenced by the same awe that had
The Call of the Blood 61
come over Bruce. And now the man began to dis-
cern, here and there through the forest, queer rus-
tlings of the foliage that meant the passing through
of some of the great beasts of prey.
Once two deer flashed by him, — just a streak
that vanished quickly. The dusk deepened. The
further trees were dimming. The sky turned green,
then gray. The distant mountains were enfolded
in gloom. Bruce headed on — faster, up the trail.
The heaviness in his limbs had changed to an
actual ache, but he gave no thought to it. He was
enthralled by the change that was on the forest, —
a whipping-back of a thousand-thousand years to
a young and savage world. There was the sense of
vast and tragic events all in keeping with the gath-
ering gloom of the forest. He was awed and mys-
tified as never before.
It was quite dark now, and he could barely see
the trail. For the first time he began to despair,
feeling that another night of overpowering impa-
tience must be spent before he could reach Trail's
End. The stars began to push through the darken-
ing sky. Then, fainter than the gleam of a firefly,
he saw the faint light of a far distant camp fire.
His heart bounded. He knew what was there.
It was the end of the trail at last. And it guided
him the rest of the way. When he reached the top
of a little rise in the trail, the whole scene was laid
out in mystery below him.
The fire had been built at the door of a mountain
house, — a log structure of perhaps four rooms.
The firelight played in its open doorway. Some-
62 The Strength of the Pines
thing beside it caught his attention, and instinctively
he followed it with his eyes until it ended in an in-
credible region of the stars. It was a great pine
tree, the largest he had ever seen, — seemingly a
great sentinel over all the land.
But the sudden awe that came over him at the
sight of it was cut short by the sight of a girl's fig-
ure in the firelight. He had an instant's sense that
he had come to the wilderness's heart at last, that
this tall tree was its symbol, that if he could under-
stand the eternal watch that it kept over this moun-
tain world, he would have an understanding of all
things, — but all these thoughts were submerged in
the realization that he had come back to Linda at
last.
He had known how the mountains would seem.
All that he had beheld to-day was just the recur-
rence of things beheld long ago. Nothing had
seemed different from what he had expected; rather
he had a sense that a lost world had been returned
to him, and it was almost as if he had never been
away. But the girl in the firelight did not answer
in the least degree the picture he had carried of
Linda.
He remembered her as a blond-headed little girl
with irregular features and a rather unreasonable
allowance of homeliness. All the way he had
thought of her as a baby sister, — not as a woman
in her flower. For a long second he gazed at her in
speechless amazement.
Her hair was no longer blond. True, it had
peculiar red lights when the firelight shone
The Call of the Blood 63
through it; but he knew that by the light of
day it would be deep brown. He remembered
her as an awkward little thing that was hardly
able to keep her feet under her. This tall girl had
the wilderness grace, — which is the grace of a deer
and only blind eyes cannot see it. He dimly knew
that she wore a khaki-colored skirt and a simple
blouse of white tied with a blue scarf. Her arms
were bare in the fire's gleam. And there was a
dark beauty about her face that simply could not
be denied.
She came toward him, and her hands were open
before her. And her lips trembled. Bruce could
see them in the firelight.
It was a strange meeting. The firelight gave it a
tone of unreality, and the whole forest world seemed
to pause in its whispered business as if to watch.
It was as if they had been brought face to face by
the mandates of an inexorable destiny.
" So you Ve come," the girl said. The words
were spoken unusually soft, scarcely above a whis-
per; but they were inexpressibly vivid to Bruce.
In his lifetime he had heard many words that were
just so many lifeless selections from a dictionary, -
flat utterances with no overtones to give them vital-
ity. He had heard voices in plenty that were merely
the mechanical result of the vibration of vocal
cords. But these words — not for their meaning
but because of the quality of the voice that had
spoken them — really lived. They told first of a
boundless relief and joy at his coming. But more
than that, in these deep vibrant tones was the ex-
6 4 The Strength of the Pines
pression of an unquenchable life and spirit. Every
fiber of her body lived in the fullest sense ; he knew
this fact the instant that she spoke.
She smiled at him, ever so quietly. " Bwovaboo,"
she said, recalling the name by which she called him
in her babyhood, " you Ve come to Linda."
IX
As the fire burned down to coals and the stars
wheeled through the sky, Linda told her story. The
two of them were seated in the soft grass in front of
the cabin, and the moonlight was on Linda's face
as she talked. She talked very low at first. In-
deed there was no need for loud tones. The whole
wilderness world was heavy with silence, and a
whisper carried far. Besides, Bruce was just be-
side her, watching her with narrowed eyes, forgetful
of everything except her story.
It was a perfect background for the savage tale
that she had to tell. The long shadow of the giant
pine tree fell over them. The fire made a little circle
of red light, but the darkness ever encroached upon
it. Just beyond the moonlight showed them silver-
white patches between the trees, across which shad-
ows sometimes wavered from the passing of the
wild creatures.
" I 've waited a long time to tell you this," she
told him. " Of course, when we were babies to-
gether in the orphanage, I did n't even know it. It
has taken me a long time since to learn all the de-
tails ; most of them I got from my aunt, old Elmira,
whom you talked to on the way out. Part of it I
knew by intuition, and a little of it is still doubtful.
" You ought to know first how hard I have tried
66 The Strength of the Pines
to reach you. Of course, I did n't try openly except
at first — the first years after I came here, and be-
fore I was old enough to understand." She spoke
the last word with a curious depth of feeling and a
perceptible hardness about her lips and eyes. " I
remembered j ust two things. That the man who had
adopted you was Newton Duncan ; one of the nurses
at the asylum told me that. And I remembered the
name of the city where he had taken you.
" You must understand the difficulties I worked
under. There is no rural free delivery up here, you
know, Bruce. Our mail is sent from and delivered
to the little post-office at Martin's store — over
fifteen miles from here. And some one member of
a certain family that lives near here goes down every
week to get the mail for the entire district.
"At first — and that was before I really un-
derstood — I wrote you many letters and gave them
to one of this family to mail for me. I was just a
child then, you must know, and I lived in the same
house with these people. And queer letters they
must have been."
For an instant a smile lingered at her lips, but it
seemed to come hard. It was all too plain that she
had n't smiled many times in the past days. But for
some unaccountable reason Bruce's heart leaped
when he saw it. It had potentialities, that smile.
It seemed to light her whole face. He was suddenly
exultant at the thought that once he understood
everything, he might bring about such changes that
he could see it often.
" They were just baby letters from — from Linda-
The Call of the Blood 67
Tinda to Bwovaboo — letters about the deer and
the berries and the squirrels — and all the wild
things that lived up here."
" Berries ! " Bruce cried. " I had some on the
way up." His tone wavered, and he seemed to be
speaking far away. " I had some once — long ago."
" Yes. You will understand, soon. I did n't un-
derstand why you did n't answer my letters. I un-
derstand now, though. You never got them."
" No. I never got them. But there are several
Duncans in my city. They might have gone astray."
' They went astray — but it was before they ever
reached the post-office. They were never mailed,
Bruce. I was to know why, later. Even then it was
part of the plan that I should never get in communi-
cation with you again — that you would be lost to
me forever.
' When I got older, I tried other tacks. I wrote
to the asylum, enclosing a letter to you. But those
letters were not mailed, either.
" Now we can skip a long time. I grew up. I
knew everything at last and no longer lived with
the family I mentioned before. I came here, to this
old house — and made it decent to live in. I cut my
own wood for my fuel except when one of the men
tried to please me by cutting it for me. I would n't
use it at first. Oh, Bruce — I would n't touch it ! "
Her face was no longer lovely. It was drawn
with terrible passions. But she quieted at once.
" At last I saw plainly that I was a little fool —
that all they would do for me, the better off I was.
At first, I almost starved to death because I
68 The Strength of the Pines
would n't use the food that they sent me. I tried to
grub it out of the hills. But I came to it at last. But,
Bruce, there were many things I didn't come to.
Since I learned the truth, I have never given one of
them a smile except in scorn, not a word that was n't
a word of hate.
' You are a city man, Bruce. You are what I
read about as a gentleman. You don't know what
hate means. It doesn't live in the cities. But it
lives up here. Believe me if you ever believed any-
thing — that it lives up here. The most bitter and
the blackest hate — from birth until death! It
burns out the heart, Bruce. But I don't know that
I can make you understand."
She paused, and Bruce looked away into the pine
forest. He believed the girl. He knew that this
grim land was the home of direct and primitive emo-
tions. Such things as mercy and remorse were out
of place in the game trails where the wolf pack
hunted the deer.
" When they knew how I hated them," she went
on, " they began to watch me. And once they knew
that I fully understood the situation, I was no
longer allowed to leave this little valley. There are
only two trails, Bruce. One goes to Elmira's cabin
on the way to the store. The other encircles the
mountain. With all their numbers, it was easy to
keep watch of those trails. And they told me what
they would do if they found me trying to go past."
" You don't mean — they threatened you? "
She threw back her head and laughed, but the
sound had no joy in it. "Threatened! If you
The Call of the Blood 69
think threats are common up here, you are a greener
tenderfoot than I ever took you for. Bruce, the law
up here is the law of force. The strongest wins.
The weakest dies. Wait till you see Simon. You '11
understand then — and you '11 shake in your shoes."
The words grated upon him, yet he did n't resent
them. " I Ve seen Simon," he told her.
She glanced toward him quickly, and it was en-
tirely plain that the quiet tone in his voice had sur-
prised her. Perhaps the faintest flicker of admira-
tion came into her eyes.
" He tried to stop you, did he? Of course he
would. And you came anyway. May Heaven bless
you for it, Bruce!" She leaned toward him, ap-
pealing. " And forgive me what I said."
Bruce stared at her in amazement. He could
hardly realize that this was the same voice that had
been so torn with passion a moment before. In an
instant all her hardness was gone, and the tenderness
of a sweet and wholesome nature had taken its place.
He felt a curious warmth stealing over him.
" They meant what they said, Bruce. Believe me,
if those men can do no other thing, they can keep
their word. They did n't just threaten death to me.
I could have run the risk of that. Badly as I wanted
to make them pay before I died, I would have gladly
run that risk.
' You are amazed at the free way I speak of
death. The girls you know, in the city, don't even
know the word. They don't know what it means.
They don't understand the sudden end of the light
— the darkness — the cold — the awful fear that it
70 The Strength of the Pines
is! It is no companion of theirs, down in the city.
Perhaps they see it once in a while — but it is n't in
their homes and in the air and on the trails, like it is
here. It 's a reality here, something to fight against
every hour of every day. There are just three things
to do in the mountains — to live and love and hate.
There 's no softness. There 's no middle ground."
She smiled grimly. " Let them live up here with
me — those girls you know — and they 'd under-
stand what a reality Death is. They 'd know it was
something to think about and fight against. Self-
preservation is an instinct that can be forgotten
when you have a policeman at every corner. But
it is ever present here.
" I 've lived with death, and I Ve heard of it, and
I 've seen it all my life. If there had n't been any
other way, I would have seen it in the dramas of the
wild creatures that go on around me all the time.
You '11 get down to cases here, Bruce — or else
you '11 run away. These men said they 'd do worse
things to me than kill me — and I did n't dare take
the risk.
" But once or twice I was able to get word to old
Elmira — the only ally I had left. She was of the
true breed, Bruce. You '11 call her a hag, but she 's
a woman to be reckoned with. She could hate too
— worse than a she-rattlesnake hates the man that
killed her mate — and hating is all that 's kept her
alive. You shrink when I say the word. Maybe
you won't shrink when I 'm done. Hating is a thing
that gentlefolk don't do — but gentlefolk don't live
up here. It is n't a land of gentleness. Up here
The Call of the Blood 71
there are just men and women, just male and
female.
" This old woman tried to get in communication
with every stranger that visited the hills. You see,
Bruce, she could n't write herself. And the one
time I managed to get a written message down to
her, telling her to give it to the first stranger to mail
— one of my enemies got it away from her. I ex-
pected to die that night. I was n't going to be alive
when the clan came. The only reason I did n't was
because Simon — the greatest of them all and the
one I hate the most — kept his clan from coming.
He had his own reasons.
" From then on she had to depend on word of
mouth. Some of the men promised to send letters to
Newton Duncan — but there was more than one
Newton Duncan — as you say — and possibly if
the letters were sent they went astray. But at last
— just a few weeks ago — she found a man that
knew you. And it is your story from now on."
They were still a little while. Bruce arose and
threw more wood on the fire.
" It 's only the beginning," he said.
" And you want me to tell you all? " she asked
hesitantly.
" Of course. Why did I come here? "
' You won't believe me when I say that I 'm
almost sorry I sent for you." She spoke almost
breathlessly. " I did n't know that it would be like
this. That you would come with a smile on your
face and a light in your eyes, looking for happiness.
And instead of happiness — to find all this! "
72 The Strength of the Piaes
She stretched her arms to the forests. Bruce un-
derstood her perfectly. She did not mean the woods
in the literal sense. She meant the primal emotions
that were their spirit.
She went on with lowered tones. " May Heaven
forgive me if I have done wrong to bring you here,"
she told him. " To show you — all that I have to
show — you who are a city man and a gentleman.
But, Bruce, I could n't fight alone any more. I had
to have help.
" To know the rest, you 've got to go back a
whole generation. Bruce, have you heard of the
terrible blood-feuds that the mountain families
sometimes have? "
" Of course. Many times."
" These mountains of Trail's End have been the
scene of as deadly a blood-feud as was ever known
in the West. And for once, the wrong was all on
one side.
" A few miles from here there is a wonderful val-
ley, where a stream flows. There is not much tilla-
ble land in these mountains, Bruce, but there, along
that little stream, there are almost five sections -
three thousand acres — of as rich land as was ever
plowed. And Bruce — the home means something
in the mountains. It is n't just a place to live in,
a place to leave with relief. I 've tried to tell you
that emotions are simple and direct up here, and love
of home is one of them. That tract of land was ac-
quired long ago by a family named Ross, and they
got it through some kind of grant. I can't be
definite as to the legal aspects of all this story.
The Call of the Blood 73
They don't matter anyway — only the results re-
main.
" These Ross men were frontiersmen of the first
order. They were virtuous men too — trusting
every one, and oh! what strength they had I With
their own hands they cleared away the forest and
put the land into rich pasture and hay and grain.
They built a great house for the owner of the land,
and lesser houses for his kinsfolk that helped him
work it on shares. Then they raised cattle, letting
them range on the hills and feeding them in winter.
You see, the snow is heavy in winter, and unless the
stock are fed many of them die. The Rosses raised
great herds of cattle and had flocks of sheep too.
" It was then that dark days began to come. An-
other family — headed by the father of the man I
call Simon — migrated here from the mountain dis-
tricts of Oklahoma. But they were not so ignorant
as many mountain people, and they were killers.
Perhaps that 's a word you don't know. Perhaps
you did n't know it existed. A killer is a man that
has killed other men. It is n't a hard thing to do at
all, Bruce, after you are used to it. These people
were used to it. And because they wanted these
great lands — my own father's home — they began
to kill the Rosses.
" At first they made no war on the Folgers.
The Folgers, you must know, were good people too,
honest to the last penny. They were connected, by
marriage only, to the Ross family. They were on
our side clear through. At the beginning of the
feud the head of the Folger family was just a young
74 The Strength of the Pines
man, newly married. And he had a son after a
while.
" The newcomers called it a feud. But it was n't
a feud — it was simply murder. Oh, yes, we killed
some of them. Folger and my father and all his kin
united against them, making a great clan — but
they were nothing in strength compared to the
usurpers. Simon himself was just a boy when it
began. But he grew to be the greatest power, the
leader of the enemy clan before he was twenty-one.
' You must know, Bruce, that my own father
held the land. But he was so generous that his
brothers who helped him farm it hardly realized
that possession was in his name. And father was a
dead shot. It took a long time before they could
kill him."
The coldness that had come over her words did
not in the least hide her depth of feeling. She
gazed moodily into the darkness and spoke almost
in a monotone.
" But Simon — just a boy then — and Dave, his
brother, and the others of them kept after us like so
many wolves. There was no escape. The only
thing we could do was to fight back — and that
was the way we learned to hate. A man can hate,
Bruce, when he is fighting for his home. He can
learn it very well when he sees his brother fall dead,
or his father — or a stray bullet hit his wife. A
woman can learn it too, as old Elmira did, when she
finds her son's body in the dead leaves. There was
no law here to stop it. The little semblance of law
that was in the valleys below regarded it as a blood-
The Call of the Blood 75
feud, and did n't bother itself about it. Besides —
at first we were too proud to call for help. And
after our numbers were few, the trails were watched
— and those who tried to go down into the valleys
— never got there.
" One after another the Rosses were killed, and
I needn't make it any worse for you than I can
help — by telling of each killing. Enough to say
that at last no one was left except a few old men
whose eyes were too dim to shoot straight, and my
own father. And I was a baby then — just born.
"Then one night my father — seeing the fate
that was coming down upon him — took the last
course to defeat them. Matthew Folger — a con-
nection by marriage — was still alive. Simon's
clan had n't attacked him yet. He had no share in
the land, but instead lived in this house I live in now.
He had a few cattle and some pasture land farther
down the Divide. There had been no purpose in
killing him. He had n't been worth the extra bullet.
" One night my father left me asleep and stole
through the forests to talk to him. They made an
agreement. I have pieced it out, a little at a time.
My father deeded all his land to Folger.
" I can understand now. The enemy clan pre-
tended it was a blood-feud only — and that it was
fair war to kill the Rosses. Although my father
knew their real aim was to obtain the land, he did n't
think they would dare kill Matthew Folger to get
it. He knew that he himself would fall, sooner or
later, but he thought that to kill Folger would
show their cards — and that would be too much,
76 The Strength of the Pines
even for Simon's people. But he did n't know. He
had n't foreseen to what lengths they would go."
Bruce leaned forward. " So they killed — Mat-
thew Folger? " he asked.
He did n't know that his face had gone suddenly
stark white, and that a curious glitter had come to
his eyes. He spoke breathlessly. For the name —
Matthew Folger — called up vague memories that
seemed to reveal great truths to him. The girl
smiled grimly.
"Let me go on. My father deeded Folger the
land. The deed was to go on record so that all the
world would know that Folger owned it, and if
the clan killed him it was plainly for the purposes
of greed alone. But there was also a secret agree-
ment— drawn up in black and white and to be
kept hidden for twenty-one years. In this agree-
ment, Folger promised to return to me — the only
living heir of the Rosses — the lands acquired by
the deed. In reality, he was only holding them in
trust for me, and was to return them when I was
twenty-one. In case of my father's death, Folger
was to be my guardian until that time.
" Folger knew the risk he ran, but he was a brave
man and he did not care. Besides, he was my
father's friend — and friendship goes far in the
mountains. And my father was shot down before
a week was past.
" The clan had acted quick, you see. When Fol-
ger heard of it, before the dawn, he came to my
father's house and carried me away. Before an-
other night was done he was killed too."
The Call of the Blood 77
The perspiration leaped out on Brace's forehead.
The red glow of the fire was in his eyes.
" He fell almost where this fire is built, with a
thirty-thirty bullet in his brain. Which one of the
clan killed him I do not know — but in all prob-
ability it was Simon himself — at that time only
eighteen years of age. And Folger's little boy —
something past four years old — wandered out in
the moonlight to find his father's body."
The girl was speaking slowly now, evidently
watching the effect of her words on her listener.
He was bent forward, and his breath came in queer,
whispering gusts. " Go on! " he ordered savagely.
'* Tell me the rest. Why do you keep me waiting? "
The girl smiled again, — like a sorceress. " Fol-
ger's wife was from the plains' country," she told
him slowly. "If she had been of the mountains she
might have remained to do some killing on her own
account. Like old Elmira herself remained to do
— killing on her own account ! But she was from
cities, just as you are, but she — unlike you — had
no mountain blood in her. She wasn't used to
death, and perhaps she did n't know how to hate.
She only knew how to be afraid.
' They say that she went almost insane at the
sight of that strong, brave man of hers lying still
in the pine needles. She had n't even known he was
out of the house. He had gone out on some secret
business — late at night. She had only one thing
left — her baby boy and her little foster-daughter —
little Linda Ross who is before you now. Her only
thought was to get those children out of that dread-
78 The Strength of the Pines
ful land of bloodshed and to hide them so that they
could never come back. And she did n't even want
them to know their true parentage. She seemed to
realize that if they had known, both of them would
return some time — to collect their debts. Sooner
or later, that boy with the Folger blood in him and
that girl with the Ross blood would return, to at-
tempt to regain their ancient holdings, and to make
the clan pay!
" All that was left were a few old women with
hate in their hearts and a strange tradition to take
the place of hope. They said that sometime, if
death spared them, they would see Folger's son
come back again, and assert his rights. They said
that a new champion would arise and right their
wrongs. But mostly death didn't spare them. Only
old Elmira is left. *
" What became of the secret agreement I do not
know. I haven't any hope that you do, either.
The deed was carried down to the courts by Sharp,
one of the witnesses who managed to get past the
guard, and put on file soon after it was written.
The rest is short. Simon and his clan took up the
land, swearing that Matthew Folger had deeded it
to them the day he had procured it. They had a
deed to show for it — a forgery. And the one
thing that they feared, the one weak chain, was that
this secret agreement between Folger and my
father would be found.
" You see what that would mean. It would show
that he had no right to deed away the land, as he
was simply holding it in trust for me. Old Elmira
The Call of the Blood 79
explained the matter to me — if I get mixed up on
the legal end of it, excuse it. If that document
could be found, their forged deed would be obvi-
ously invalid. And it angered them that they could
not find it.
" Of course they never filed their forged deed —
afraid that the forgery would be discovered — but
they kept it to show to any one that was interested.
But they wanted to make themselves still safer.
" There had been two witnesses to the agreement.
One of them, a man named Sharp, died — or was
killed — shortly after. The other, an old trapper
named Hudson, was indifferent to the whole matter
— he was just passing through and was at Folger's
house for dinner the night Ross came. He is still
living in these mountains, and he might be of value
to us yet.
"Of course the clan did not feel at all secure.
They suspected the secret agreement had been
mailed to some one to take care of, and they were
afraid that it would be brought to light when the
time was ripe. They knew perfectly that their
forged deed would never stand the test, so one of
the things to do was to prevent their claim ever
being contested. That meant to keep Folger's son
in ignorance of the whole matter.
" I hope I can make that clear. The deed from
my father to Folger was on record, Folger was dead,
and Folger's son would have every right and op-
portunity to contest the clan's claim to the land.
If he could get the matter into court, he would
surely win.
8o The Strength of the Pines
* The second thing to do was to win me over. I
was just a child, and it looked the easiest course of
all. That 's why I was stolen from the orphanage
by one of Simon's brothers. The idea was simply
that when the time came I would marry one of the
clan and establish their claim to the land forever.
" Up to a few weeks ago it seemed to me that
sooner or later I would win out. Bruce, you can't
dream what it meant ! I thought that some time I
could drive them out and make them pay, a little,
for all they have done. But they 've tricked me,
after all. I thought that I would get word to
Folger's son, who by inheritance would have a clear
title to the land, and he, with the aid of the courts,
could drive these usurpers out. But just recently
I 've found out that even this chance is all but gone.
" Within a few more weeks, they will have been
in possession of the land for a full twenty years.
Through some legal twist I don't understand, if a
man pays taxes and has undisputed possession of
land for that length of time, his title is secure. They
failed to win me over, but it looks as if they had won,
anyway. The only way that they can be defeated
now is for that secret agreement — between my
father and Folger — to reappear. And I 've long
ago given up all hope of that.
" There is no court session between now and Oc-
tober thirtieth — when their twenty years of undis-
puted possession is culminated. There seems to be
no chance to contest them — to make them bring
that forged deed into the light before that time.
We 've lost, after all. And only one thing remains."
The Call of the Blood 8 1
He looked up to find her eyes full upon him. He
had never seen such eyes. They seemed to have
sunk so deep into the flesh about them that only
lurid slits remained. It was not that her lids were
partly down. Rather it was because the flesh-sacks
beneath them had become charged with her pound-
ing blood. The fire's glow was in them and cast a
strange glamour upon her face. It only added to
the strangeness of the picture that she sat almost
limp, rather than leaning forward in appeal. Bruce
looked at her in growing awe.
But as the second passed he seemed no longer able
to see her plainly. His eyes were misted and
blurred, but they were empty of tears as Linda's
own. Rather the focal points of his brain had be-
come seared by a mounting flame within himself.
The glow of the fire had seemingly spread until it
encompassed the whole wilderness world.
" What is the one thing that remains? " he asked
her, whispering.
She answered with a strange, terrible coldness of
tone. " The blood atonement," she said between
back-drawn lips.
X
WHEN the minute hand of the watch in his pocket
had made one more circuit, both Bruce and Linda
found themselves upon their feet. The tension had
broken at last. Her emotion had been curbed too
long. It broke from her in a flood.
She seized his hands, and he started at their touch.
" Don't you understand? " she cried. " You — you
— you are Folger's son. You are the boy that crept
out — under this very tree — to find him dead. All
my life Elmira and I have prayed for you to come.
And what are you going to do? "
Her face was drawn in the white light of the
moon. For an instant he seemed dazed.
"Do? " he repeated. "I don't know what I 'm
going to do."
" You don't! " she cried, in infinite scorn. " Are
you just clay? Are n't you a man? Have n't you
got arms to strike with and eyes to see along a rifle
barrel? Are you a coward — and a weakling; one
of your mother's blood to run away? Have n't you
anything to avenge? I thought you were a moun-
tain man — that all your years in cities could n't
take that quality away from you! Haven't you
any answer? "
He looked up, a strange light growing on his
face. ' You mean — killing? "
" What else? To kill — never to stop killing —
The Call of the Blood 83
one after another until they are gone ! Till Simon
Turner and the whole Turner clan have paid the
debts they owe."
Bruce recoiled as if from a blow. ' Turner?
Did you say Turner? " he asked hoarsely.
" Yes. That 's the clan's name. I thought you
knew."
There was an instant of strange truce. Both
stood motionless. The scene no longer seemed part
of the world that men have come to know in these
latter years, — a land of cities and homes and peace-
ful twilights over quiet countrysides. The moon
was still strange and white in the sky; the pines
stood tall and dark and sad, — eternal emblems of
the wilderness. The fire had burned down to a few
lurid coals glowing in the gray ashes. No longer
were these two children of civilization. Their pas-
sion had swept them back into the immeasurable
past; they were simply human beings deep in the
simplest of human passions. They trembled all
over with it.
Bruce understood now his unprovoked attack on
the little boy when he had been taken from the or-
phanage on trial. The boy had been named Turner,
and the name had been enough to recall a great and
terrible hatred that he had learned in earliest baby-
hood. The name now recalled it again; the truth
stood clear at last. It was the key to all the mys-
tery of his life ; it stirred him more than all of Linda's
words. In an instant all the tragedy of his baby-
hood was recalled, — the hushed talk between his
parents, the oaths, the flames in their eyes, and
84 The Strength of the Pines
finally the body he had found lying so still be-
neath the pines. It was always the Turners, the
dread name that had filled his baby days with
horror. He had n't understood then. It had been
blind hatred, — hatred without understanding or
self -analysis.
As she watched, his mountain blood mounted to
the ascendancy. A strange transformation came
over him. The gentleness that he had acquired in
his years of city life began to fall away from him.
The mountains were claiming him again.
It was not a mental change alone. It was a thing
to be seen with the unaided eyes. His hand had
swept through his hair, disturbing the part, and
now the black locks dropped down on his forehead,
almost to his eyes. The whole expression of his
face seemed to change. His look of culture dropped
from him ; his eyes narrowed ; he looked grotesquely
out of place in his soft, well-tailored clothes.
But he was quite cold now. His passion was
submerged under a steel exterior. His voice was
cold and hard when he spoke.
6 Then you and I are no relation whatever? "
" None."
" But we fight the same fight now."
" Yes. Until we both win — or both die."
Before he could speak again, a strange answer
came out of the darkness. " Not two of you," a
croaking old voice told them. It rose, shrill and
cracked, from the shadows beyond the fire. They
turned, and the moonlight showed a bent old figure
hobbling toward them.
The Call of the Blood 85
It was old Elmira, her cane tapping along in front
of her; and something that caught the moonlight
lay in the hollow of her left arm. Her eyes still
glowed under the grizzled brows.
" Not two, but three," she corrected, in the hol-
low voice of uncounted years. In the magic of the
moonlight it seemed quite fitting to both of them
that she should have come. She was one of the
triumvirate ; they wondered why they had not missed
her before. It was farther than she had walked in
years, but her spirit had kept her up.
She put the glittering object that she carried into
Bruce's hands. It was a rifle — a repeating breech-
loader of a famous make and a model of thirty years
before. It was such a rifle as lives in legend, with
sights as fine as a razor edge and an accuracy as
great as light itself. Loving hands had polished it
and kept it in perfect condition.
" Matthew Folger's rifle," the old woman ex-
plained, " for Matthew Folger's son."
And that is how Bruce Folger returned to the
land of his birth — as most men do, unless death
cheats them first — and how he made a pact to pay
old debts of death.
BOOK TWO
THE BLOOD ATONEMENT
XI
" MEN own the day, but the night is ours," is an
old saying among the wild folk that inhabit the
forests of Trail's End. And the saying has really
deep significances that can't be discerned at one
hearing. Perhaps human beings — their thoughts
busy with other things — can never really get them
at all. But the mountain lion — purring a sort of
queer, singsong lullaby to her wicked-eyed little
cubs in the lair — and the gray wolf, running along
the ridges in the mystery of the moon — and those
lesser hunters, starting with Tuft-ear the lynx and
going all the way down to that terrible, white-
toothed cutthroat, Little Death the mink — they
know exactly what the saying means, and they know
that it is true. The only one of the larger forest
creatures that doesn't know is old Ashur, the black
bear (Ashur means black in an ancient tongue, just
as Brunn means brown, and the common Oregon
bear is usually decidedly black) and the fact that he
does n't is curious in itself. In most ways Ashur
has more intelligence than all the others put to-
gether; but he is also the most indifferent. He
is not a hunter; and he does n't care who owns any-
88 The Strength of the Pines
thing as long as there are plenty of bee trees to mop
out with his clumsy paw, and plenty of grubs under
the rotten logs.
The saying originated long and long ago when
the world was quite young. Before that time, likely
enough, the beasts owned both the day and the night,
and you can imagine them denying man's superior-
ity just as long as possible. But they came to it in
the end, and perhaps now they are beginning to be
doubtful whether they still hold dominion over the
night hours. You can fancy the forest people
whispering the saying back and forth, using it as a
password when they meet on the trails, and trying
their best to believe it. " Man owns the day but the
night is ours," the coyotes whisper between Sobs.
In a world where men have slowly, steadily con-
quered all the wild creatures, killed them and driven
them away, their one consolation lies in the fact
that when the dark comes down their old preemi-
nence returns to them.
Of course the saying is ridiculous if applied to
cities or perhaps even to the level, cleared lands of
the Middle West. The reason is simply that the
wild life is practically gone from these places. Per-
haps a lowly skunk steals along a hedge on the way
to a chicken pen, but he quivers and skulks with
fear, and all the arrogance of hunting is as dead in
him as his last year's perfume. And perhaps even
the little bobwhites, nestling tail to tail, know that
it is wholly possible that the farmer's son has marked
their roost and will come and pot them while they
sleep. But a few places remain in America where
The Blood Atonement 89
the reign of the wild creatures, during the night
hours at least, is still supreme. And Trail's End is
one of them.
It doesn't lie in the Middle West. It is just
about as far west as one can conveniently go, unless
he cares to trace the rivers down to their mouths.
Neither was it cleared land, nor had its soil ever
been turned by a plow. The few clearings that
there were — such as the great five sections of the
Rosses — were so far apart that a wolf could run
all night (and the night-running of a wolf is some-
thing not to speak of lightly) without passing one.
There is nothing but forest, — forest that stretches
without boundaries, forest to which a great moun-
tain is but a single flower in a meadow, forest to
make the brain of a timber cruiser reel and stagger
from sheer higher mathematics. Perhaps man owns
these timber stretches in the daytime. He can go
out and cut down the trees, and when they don't
choose to fall over on top of him, return safely to
his cabin at night. He can venture forth with his
rifle and kill Ashur the black bear and Blacktail
the deer, and even old Brother Bill, the grand and
exalted ruler of the elk lodge. The sound of his
feet disturbs the cathedral silence of the tree aisles,
and his oaths — when the treacherous trail gives
way beneath his feet — carry far through the cov-
erts. But he behaves somewhat differently at night.
He does n't feel nearly so sure of himself. The
sound of a puma screaming a few dozen feet away
in the shadows is likely enough to cause an un-
pleasant twitching of the skin of his back. And
go The Strength of the Pines
he feels considerably better if there are four stout
walls about him. At nighttime, the wild creatures
come into their own.
Bruce sensed these things as he waited for the day
to break. For all the hard exertion of the previous
day, he wakened early on the first morning of his
return to his father's home. Through the open win-
dow he watched the dawn come out. And he fan-
cied how a puma, still hungry, turned to snarl at the
spreading light as he crept to his lair.
All over the forest the hunting creatures left
their trails and crept into the coverts. Their reign
was done until darkness fell again. The night life
of the forest was slowly stilled. The daylight crea-
tures — such as the birds — began to waken. Prob-
ably they welcomed the sight of day as much as
Bruce himself. The man dressed slowly. He
wouldn't waken the two women that slept in the
next room, he thought. He crept slowly out into
the gray dawn.
He made straight for the great pine that stood a
short distance from the house. For reasons un-
known to him, the pine had come often into his
dreams. He had thought that its limbs rubbed to-
gether and made words, — but of the words them-
selves he had hardly caught the meaning. There
was some high message in them, however; and the
dream had left him with a vague curiosity, an un-
explainable desire to see the forest monarch in the
daylight.
As he waited, the mist blew off of the land; the
gray of twilight was whisked away to a twilight-
The Blood Atonement 91
land that is hidden in the heart of the forest. He
found to his delight that the tree was even more
impressive in the vivid morning light than it had
been at night. It was not that the light actually got
into it. Its branches were too thick and heavy for
that. It still retained its air of eternal secrecy, an
impression that it knew great mysteries that a
thousand philosophers would give their lives to
learn. He was constantly awed by the size of it.
He guessed its circumference as about twenty-five
feet. The great lower limbs were themselves like
massive tree trunks. Its top surpassed by fifty feet
any pine in the vicinity.
As he watched, the sun came up, gleaming first
on its tall spire. It slowly overtook it. The dusk
of its green lightened. Bruce was not a particularly
imaginative man ; but the impression grew that this
towering tree had an answer for some great ques-
tion in his own heart, — a question that he had
never been able to shape into words. He felt that
it knew the wholly profound secret of life.
After all, it could not but have such knowledge.
It was so incredibly old; it had seen so much.
His mind flew back to some of the dramas of human
life that had been enacted in its shade, and his
imagination could picture many more. His own
father had lain here dead, shot down by a murderer
concealed in the distant thicket. It had beheld his
own wonder when he had found the still form lying
in the moonlight ; it had seen his mother's grief and
terror. Wilderness dramas uncounted had been
enacted beneath it. Many times the mountain lion
92 The Strength of the Pines
had crept into its dark branches. Many times the
bear had grunted beneath it and reached up to
write a challenge with his claws in its bark. The
eyes of Tuft-ear the lynx had gleamed from its
very top, and the old bull-elk had filed off his velvet
on the sharp edges of the bark. It had seen savage
battles between the denizens of the wood ; the deer
racing by with the wolf pack in pursuit. For un-
counted years it had stood aloft, above all the mad-
ness and bloodshed and passion that are the eternal
qualities of the wilderness, somber, stately, unut-
terably aloof.
It had known the snows. When the leaves fell
and the wind came out of the north, it would know
them again. For the snow falls for a depth of ten
feet or more over most of Trail's End. For innu-
merable winters its limbs had been heaped with the
white load, the great branches bending beneath it.
The wind made faint sounds through its branches
now, but would be wholly silent when the winter
snows weighted the limbs. He could picture the
great, white giant, silent as death, still keeping its
vigil over the snow-swept wilderness.
Bruce felt a growing awe. The great tree seemed
so wise, it gave him such a sense of power. The
winds had buffeted it in vain. It had endured the
terrible cold of winter. Generation after genera-
tion of the creatures who moved on the face of the
earth had lived their lives beneath it; they had
struggled and mated and fought their battles and
felt their passions, and finally they had died ; and
still it endured, — silent, passionless, full of
The Blood Atonement 93
thoughts. Here was real greatness. Not stirring,,
not struggling, not striving ; only standing firm and
straight and impassive; not taking part, but only
watching, knowing no passion but only strength, —
ineffably patient and calm.
But it was sad too. Such knowledge always
brings sadness. It had seen too much to be other-
wise. The pines are never cheerful trees, like the
apple that blossoms in spring, or the elm whose
leaves shimmer in the sunlight ; and this great mon-
arch of all the pines was sad as great music. In
this quality, as well as in its strength, it was the
symbol of the wilderness itself. But it was more
than that. It was the Great Sentinel, and in its
unutterable impassiveness it was the emblem and
symbol of even mightier powers. Bruce's full wis-
dom had not yet come to him, so he could n't name
these powers. He only knew that they lived far
and far above the world and, like the tree itself,
held aloof from all the passion of Eve and the
bloodlust of Cain. Like the pine itself, they were
patient, impassive, and infinitely wise.
He felt stilled and calmed himself. Such was its
influence. And he turned with a start when he saw
Linda in the doorway.
Her face was calm too in the morning light. Her
dark eyes were lighted. He felt a curious little
glow of delight at the sight of her.
" I Ve been talking to the pine — all the morn-
ing," he told her.
" But it won't talk to you," she answered. " It
talks only to the stars."
XII
BRUCE and Linda had a long talk while the sun
climbed up over the great ridges to the east and
old Elmira cooked their breakfast. There was no
passion in their words this morning. They had got
down to a basis of cold planning.
" Let me refresh my memory about a few of those
little things you told me," Bruce requested. " First
— on what date does the twenty-year period — of
Turners' possession of the land — expire? "
" On the thirtieth of October, of this year."
" Not very long, is it? Now you understand that
on that date they will have had twenty years of un-
disputed possession of the land; they will have paid
taxes on it that long ; and unless their title is proven
false between now and that date, we can't ever drive
them out."
" That 's just right."
" And the fall term of court does n't begin until
the fifth of the following month."
1 Yes, we 're beaten. That 's all there is to it.
Simon told me so the last time he talked to me."
" It would be to his interest to have you think so.
But Linda — we must n't give up yet. We must
try as long as one day remains. The law is full of
twists ; we might find a way to checkmate them, es-
pecially if that secret agreement should show up.
The Blood Atonement 95
It is n't just enough — to have vengeance. That
would n't put the estate back in your hands ; they
would have won, after all. It seems to me that the
first thing to do is to find the trapper, Hudson —
the one witness that is still alive. You say he wit-
nessed that secret agreement between your father
and mine."
it "\7- 5>
i es.
" His testimony would be invaluable to us. He
might be able to prove to the court that as my father
never owned the land in reality, he could n't possibly
have deeded it to the Turners. Do you know where
this Hudson is?"
" I asked old Elmira last night. She thinks she
knows. A man told her he had his trap line on the
upper Umpqua, and his main headquarters — you
know that trappers have a string of camps — was
at the mouth of Little River, that flows into the
Umpqua. But it is a long way from here."
Bruce was still a moment. " How far? " he
asked.
' Two full days' tramp at the least — barring out
accidents. But if you think it is best — you can
start out to-day."
Bruce was a man who made decisions quickly.
He had learned the wisdom of it, — that after all the
evidence is gathered on each side, a single second is
all the time that is needed for any kind of decision.
Beyond that point there is only vacillation. ' Then
I '11 start — right away. Can you tell me how to
find the trail? "
" I can only tell you to go straight north. Use
96 The Strength of the Pines
your watch as a compass in the daytime and the
North Star at night."
" I did n't suppose that it was wisdom to travel
at night."
She looked at him in sudden astonishment. " And
where did you learn that fact, Bruce? "
The man tried hard to remember. " I don't know.
I suppose it was something I heard when I was a
baby — in these mountains."
" It is one of the first things a mountaineer has
to know — to make camp at nightfall. You would
want to, anyway, Bruce. You Ve got enough real
knowledge of the wilderness in you — born in you
— to want a camp and a fire at night. Besides, the
trails are treacherous."
" Then the thing to do is to get ready at once.
And then try to bring Hudson back with me —
down to the valley. After we get there we can see
what can be done."
Linda smiled rather sadly. " I 'm not very hope-
ful. But he 's our last chance — and we might as
well make a try. There is no hope that the secret
agreement will show up in these few weeks that
remain. We '11 get your things together at once."
They breakfasted, and after the simple meal was
finished, Bruce began to pack for the journey. He
was very thankful for the months he had spent in
an army camp. He took a few simple supplies of
food : a piece of bacon, a little sack of dried venison
— that delicious fare that has held so many men
up on long journeys — and a compact little sack of
prepared flour. There was no space for delicacies
The Blood Atonement 97
in the little pack. Besides, a man forgets about such
things on the high trails. Butter, sugar, even that
ancient friend coffee had to be left behind. He took
one little utensil for cooking — a small skillet —
and Linda furnished him with a camp ax and a
long-bladed hunting knife. These things (with the
^exception of the knife and ax) he tied up in one
heavy, all-wool blanket, making a compact pack for
carrying on his back.
In his pocket he carried cartridges for the rifle,
pipe, tobacco, and matches. Linda took the hob-
nails out of her own shoes and pounded them into
his. For there are certain trails in Trail's End that
to the unnailed shoe are quite like the treadmills of
ancient days; the foot slips back after every
step.
One thing more was needed : tough leggings. The
soft flannel trousers had not been tailored for wear
in the brush coverts. And there is still another
reason why the mountain men want their ankles
covered. In portions of Trail's End there are
certain rock ledges — gray, strange stone heaps
blasted by the summer sun — and some of the paths
that Bruce would take crossed over them. These
ledges are the home of a certain breed of forest
creatures that Bruce did not in the least desire to
meet. Unlike many of the wild folk, they are not
at all particular about getting out of the way, and
they are more than likely to lash up at a traveler's
instep. It is n't wise to try to jump out of the way.
If a man were practiced at dodging lightning bolts
he might do it, but not an ordinary mortal. For
98 The Strength of the Pines
that lunging head is one of the swiftest things in
the whole swift-moving animal world. And it is n't
entirely safe to rely on a warning rattle. Sometimes
the old king-snake forgets to give it. These are the
poison people — the gray rattlesnakes that gather
in mysterious, grim companies on the rocks — and
the only safety from them is thick covering to the
knees that the fangs cannot penetrate.
But the old woman solved this problem with a
deer hide that had been curing for some seasons on
the wall behind the house. Her eyes were dimmed
with age, her fingers were stiff, but in an astonish-
ingly short period of time she improvised a pair of
leathern puttees, fastening with a strap, that an-
swered the purpose beautifully. The two women
walked with him, out under the pine.
Bruce shook old Elmira's scrawny hand; then
she turned back at once into the house. The man
felt singularly grateful. He began to credit the
old woman with a great deal of intuition, or else
memories from her own girlhood of long and long
ago. He did want a word alone with this strange
girl of the pines. But when Elmira had gone in
and the coast was clear, it would n't come to his lips.
He felt curious conjecturings and wonderment
arising within him. He could n't have shaped them
into words. It was just that the girl's face intrigued
him, mystified him, and perhaps moved him a little
too. It was a frank, clear, girlish face, wonderfully
tender of feature, and at first her eyes held him most
of all. They gave an impression of astounding
depth. They were quite serious now; and they had
The Blood Atonement 99
a luster such as can be seen on cold spring water
over dark moss, — and few other places on earth.
" It seems strange," he said, " to come here only
last night — and then to be leaving again."
It seemed to his astonished gaze that her lips
trembled ever so slightly. ' We have been waiting
f<5r each other a long time, Bwovaboo," she replied.
She spoke rather low, not looking straight at him.
" And I hate to have you go again so soon."
" But I '11 be back — in a few days."
" You don't know. No one ever knows when
they start out in these mountains. Promise me,
Bruce — to keep watch every minute. Remember
there 's nothing — nothing — that Simon won't
stoop to do. He 's like a wolf. He has no rules of
fighting. He 'd just as soon strike from ambush.
How do I know that you '11 ever come back again? "
" But I will." He smiled at her, and his eyes
dropped from hers to her lips. His heart seemed to
miss a beat. He had n't noticed these lips in par-
ticular before. The mouth was tender and girlish,
its sensitiveness scarcely seeming fitting in a child
of these wild places. He reached out and took her
hand.
" Good-by, Linda," he said, smiling.
She smiled in reply, and her old cheer seemed to
return to her. " Good-by, Bwovaboo. Be careful."
" I '11 be careful. And this reminds me of some-
thing."
"What?"
' That for all the time I Ve been away — and for
all the time I 'm going to be away now — I have n't
ioo The Strength of the Pines
done anything more — well, more intimate — than
shake your hand."
Her answer was to pout out her lips in the most
natural way in the world. Bruce was usually de-
liberate in his motions ; but all at once his delibera-
tion fell away from him. There seemed to be no in-
terlude of time between one position and another.
His arms went about her, and he kissed her gently
on the lips.
But it was not at all as they expected. Both had
gone into it lightly, — a boy-and-girl caress such as
is usually not worth thinking about twice, fie had
supposed it would be just like the other kisses he
had known in his growing-up days: a moment's
soft pressure of the lips, a moment's delight, and
nothing either to regret or rejoice in. But it was
far more than this, after all. Perhaps because they
had been too long in one another's thoughts; per-
haps— living in a land of hated foes — because
Linda had not known many kisses, this little caress
beneath the pine went very straight home indeed to
them both. They fell apart, both of them suddenly
sobered. The girl's eyes were tender and lustrous,
but startled too.
" Good-by, Linda," he told her.
" Good-by — Bwovaboo," she answered. He
turned up the trail past the pine.
He did not know that she stood watching him a
long time, her hands clasped over her breast.
XIII
f
MILES farther than Linda's cabin, clear beyond
the end of the trail that Duncan took, past even the
highest ridge of Trail's End and in the region where
the little rivers that run into the Umpqua have their
starting place, is a certain land of Used to Be. Such
a name as that does n't make very good sense to a
tenderfoot on the first hearing. Perhaps he can
never see the real intelligence of it as long as he
remains a tenderfoot. Such creatures cannot exist
for long in the silences and the endless ridges and
the unbeaten trails of this land ; they either become
woodsmen or have communication with the buz-
zards.
It is n't a land of the Present Time at all. It is a
place that has never grown old. When a man
passes the last outpost of civilization, and the
shadows of the unbroken woods drop over him, he
is likely to forget that the year is nineteen hundred
and twenty, and that the day before yesterday he
had seen an aeroplane passing over his house. It is
true that in this place he sees winged creatures in
the air, seeming masters of the aerial tracts, but they
are not aeroplanes. Instead they are the buzzards,
and they are keeping even a closer watch on him
than he is on them. They know that many things
may happen whereby they can get acquainted be-
102 'The Strength of the Pines
fore the morning breaks. The world seems to have
kicked off its thousand-thousand years as a warm
man at night kicks off covers; and all things are
just as they used to be. It is the Young World, -
a world of beasts rather than men, a world where
the hand of man has not yet been felt.
Of course it won't be that way forever. Some-
time the forests will fall. What will become of the
beasts that live in them there is no telling; there
are not many places left for them to go. But at
present it is just as savage, just as primitive and
untamed as those ancient forests of the Young
World that a man recalls sometimes in dreams.
On this particular early- September day, the age-
old drama of the wilderness was in progress. It was
the same play that had been enacted day after day,
year upon year, until the centuries had become too
many to count, and as usual, there were no human
observers. There were no hunters armed with rifles
waiting on the deer trails to kill some of the players.
There were no naturalists taking notes that no one
will believe in the coverts. It was the usual matinee
performance; the long, hot day was almost at a
close. The play would get better later in the eve-
ning, and really would not be at its best until the
moon rose; but it was not a comedy-drama even
now. Rather it was a drama of untamed passions
and bloodshed, strife and carnage and lust and rap-
ine ; and it did n't, unfortunately, have a particularly
happy ending. Mother Nature herself, sometimes
kind but usually cruel, was the producer; she fur-
nished the theater, even the spotted costume by which
The Blood Atonement 103
the fawn remained invisible in the patches of light
and shadow ; and she had certain great purposes of
her own that no man understands. As the play was
usually complicated with many fatalities, the buz-
zards were about the only ones to benefit. They
were the real heroes of the play after all. Every-
thing always turned out all right for them. They
always triumphed in the end.
The greatest difference between this wilderness
drama and the dramas that human beings see upon
a stage is that one was reality and the other is pre-
tense. The players were beasts, not men. The
only human being anywhere in the near vicinity was
the old trapper, Hudson, following down his trap
line on the creek margin on the way to his camp.
It is true that two other men, with a rather astound-
ing similarity of purpose, were at present coming
down two of the long trails that led to the region;
but as yet the drama was hidden from their eyes.
One of these two was Bruce, coming from Linda's
cabin. One was Dave Turner, approaching from
the direction of the Ross estates. Turner was much
the nearer. Curiously, both had business with the
trapper Hudson.
The action of the play was calm at first. Mostly
the forest creatures were still in their afternoon
sleep. Brother Bill, the great stag elk, had a bed
in the very center of a thick wall of buckbush, and
human observers at first could not have explained
how his great body, with his vast spread of antlers,
had been able to push through. But in reality his
antlers aided rather than hindered. Streaming al-
104 The Strength of the Pines
most straight back they act something like a snow-
plow, parting the heavy coverts.
The bull elk is in some ways the master of the
forest, and one would wonder why he had gone to
such an out-of-the-way place to sleep. Unless he
is attacked from ambush, he has little to fear even
from the Tawny One, the great cougar, and ordi-
narily the cougar waits until night to do his hunting.
The lynx is just a source of scorn to the great bull,
and even the timber wolf — except when he is com-
bined with his relatives in winter — is scarcely to be
feared. Yet he had been careful to surround him-
self with burglar alarms, — in other words, to go
into the deep thicket that no beast of prey could
penetrate without warning him — by the sound of
breaking brush — of its approach. It would indi-
cate that there was at least one living creature in
this region — a place where men ordinarily did not
come — that the bull elk feared.
The does and their little spotted fawns were sleep-
ing too; the blacktail deer had not yet sought the
feeding grounds on the ridges. The cougar yawned
in his lair, the wolf dozed in his covert, even the
poison-people lay like long shadows on the hot
rocks. But these latter could n't be relied upon to
sleep soundly. One of the many things they can do
is to jump straight out of a dream like a flicking
whiplash, coil and hit a mark that many a good pis-
tol shot would miss.
Yet there was no chance of the buzzards, at pres-
ent spectators in the clouds and waiting for the final
act, to become bored. Particularly the lesser ani-
The Blood Atonement 105
mals of the forest — the Little People — were busy
at their occupations. A little brown-coated pine
marten — who is really nothing but an overgrown
weasel famous for his particularly handsome coat
— went stealing through the branches of a pine as
if he had rather questionable business. Some one
had told him, and he could n't remember who, that
a magpie had her nest in that same tree, and Red
Eye was going to look and see. Of course he merely
wanted to satisfy his curiosity. Perhaps he would
try to arrange to get a little sip of the mother's
blood, just as it passed through the big vein of the
throat, — but of course that was only incidental.
He felt some curiosity about the magpie's eggs too,
the last brood of the year. It might be that there
were some little magpies all coiled up inside of them,
that would be worth investigation by one of his
scientific turn of mind. Perhaps even the male bird,
coming frantically to look for his wife, might fly
straight into the nest without noticing his brown
body curled about the limb. It offered all kinds
of pleasing prospects, this hunt through the
branches.
Of course it is doubtful if the buzzards could de-
tect his serpent-like form; yet it is a brave man who
will say what a buzzard can and cannot see. Any-
thing that can remain in the air as they do, seem-
ingly without the flutter of a wing, has powers not
to speak of lightly. But if they could have seen him
they would have been particularly interested. A
marten is n't a glutton in his feeding, and often is
content with just a sip of blood from the throat.
io6 The Strength of the Pines
That leaves something warm and still for the buz-
zard's beak.
A long, spotted gopher snake slipped through the
dead grass on the ground beneath. He did n't seem
to be going anywhere in particular. He was just
moseying — if there is such a word — along. Not
a blade of grass rustled. Of course there was a chip-
munk, sitting at the door of his house in the uplifted
roots of a tree ; but the snake — although he was
approaching in his general direction — did n't seem
at all interested in him. Were it not for two things,
the serpent would have seemed to be utterly bored
and indifferent to life in general. One of these
things was its cold, glittering, reptile eyes. The
other was its darting, forked tongue.
It may be, after all, that this little tongue was of
really great importance in the serpent's hunting.
Many naturalists think that quite often the little,
rattle-brained birds and rodents that it hunts are
so interested in this darting tongue that they quite
fail to see the slow approach of the mottled body of
the snake behind it. At least it was perfectly evi-
dent that the chipmunk did not see Limber-spine at
present. Otherwise he would n't have been enjoy-
ing the scenery with quite the same complacency.
If all went well, there might be a considerable lump
in the snake's throat yet this afternoon. But it
would be a quite different kind of lump from the
one the chipmunk's little mate, waiting in vain for
her lord to come to supper, would have in Tier throat.
An old raccoon wakened from his place on a
high limb, stretched himself, scratched at his fur,
The Blood Atonement 107
then began to steal down the limb. He had a long
way to go before dark. Hunting was getting poor
in this part of the woods. He believed he would
wander down toward Hudson's camp and look for
crayfish in the water. A coyote is usually listed
among the larger forest creatures, but early though
the hour was — early, that is, for hunters to be out
- he was stalking a fawn in a covert. The coyote
has not an especially high place among the forest
creatures, and he has to do his hunting early and
late and any time that offers. Most of the larger
creatures pick on him, all the time detesting him for
his cunning. The timber wolf, a rather close rela-
tion whom he cordially hates, is apt to take bites
out of him if he meets him on the trail. The old
bull elk would like nothing better than to cut his
hide into rag patches with the sharp-edged front
hoofs. Even the magpies in the tree tops made up
ribald verses about him. But nevertheless the spot-
ted fawn had cause to fear him. The coyote is an
infamous coward; but even the little cotton tail
rabbit does not have to fear a fawn.
All these hunts were progressing famously when
there came a curious interruption. It was just a
sound at first. And strangely, not one of the forest
creatures that heard it had ears sharp enough to
tell exactly from what direction it had come.
And that made it all the more unpleasant to lis-
ten to.
It was a peculiar growl, quite low at first. It
lasted a long time, then died away. There was no
opposition to it. The forest creatures had paused
io8 The Strength of the Pines
in their tracks at its first note, and now they stood
as if the winter had come down upon them suddenly
and frozen them solid. All the other sounds of the
forest — the little whispering noises of gliding
bodies and fluttering feet, and perhaps a bird's call
in a shrub — were suddenly stilled. There was a
moment of breathless suspense. Then the sound
commenced again.
It was louder this time. It rose and gathered
Volume until it was almost a roar. It carried
through the silences in great waves of sound. And
in it was a sense of resistless power; no creature in
the forest but what knew this fact.
" The Gray King," one could imagine them say-
ing among themselves. The effect was instantane-
ous. The little raccoon halted in his descent, then
crept out to the end of a limb. Perhaps he knew
that the gray monarch could not climb trees, but
nevertheless he felt that he would be more secure
clear at the swaying limb-tip. The marten forgot
his curiosity in regard to the nest of the magpie.
The gopher snake coiled, then slipped away silently
through the grass.
The coyote, an instant before crawling with body
close to the earth, whipped about as if he had some
strange kind of circular spring inside of him. His
nerves were always rather ragged, and the sound
had frightened out of him the rigid control of his
muscles that was so necessary if he were to make a
successful stalk upon the fawn. The spotted crea-
ture bleated in terror, then darted away; and the
coyote snarled once in the general direction of the
The Blood Atonement 109
Gray King. Then he lowered his head and skulked
off deeper into the coverts.
The blacktail deer, the gray wolf, even the stately
Tawny One, stretched in grace in his lair, wakened
from sleep. The languor died quickly in the latter's
eyes, leaving only fear. These were braver than
the Little People. They waited until the thick
brush, not far distant from where the bull elk slept,
began to break down and part before an enormous,
gray body.
No longer would an observer think of the elk as
the forest monarch. He was but a pretender, after
all. The real king had just wakened from his after-
noon nap and was starting forth to hunt.
Even his little cousins, the black bears (who, after
all is said and done, furnish most of the comedy of
the deadly forest drama) did not wait to make con-
versation. They tumbled awkwardly down the hill
to get out of his way. For the massive gray form —
weighing over half a ton — was none other than that
of the last of the grizzly bears, that terrible forest
hunter and monarch, the Killer himself.
XIV
LONG ago, when Oregon was a new land to white
men, in the days of the clipper ships and the Old
Oregon Trail, the breed to which the Killer belonged
were really numerous through the little corner north
of the Siskiyous and west of the Cascades. The
land was far different then. The transcontinental
lines had not yet been built; the only settlements
were small trading posts and mining camps, and
people did not travel over paved highways in auto-
mobiles. If they went at all it was in a prairie-
schooner or on horseback. And the old grizzly
bears must have found the region a veritable
heaven.
They were a worthy breed ! It is doubtful if any
other section of the United States offered an en-
vironment so favorable to them. Game was in abun-
dance, they could venture down into the valleys at
the approach of winter and thus miss the rigors of
the snow, and at first there were no human enemies.
Unfortunately, stories are likely to grow and be-
come sadly addled after many tellings; but if the
words of certain old men could be believed, the
Southern Oregon grizzly occasionally, in the bounti-
ful fall days, attained a weight of two thousand
pounds. No doubt whatever remains that thou-
sand-pound bears were fairly numerous. They
The Blood Atonement in
trailed, up and down the brown hillsides ; they
hunted and honey-grubbed and mated in the fall;
they had their young and fought their battles and
died, and once in a long while the skeleton of a
frontiersman would be found with his skull battered
perfectly flat where one of the great beasts had
taken a short-arm pat at him.
But unlike the little black bears, the grizzlies de-
veloped displeasing habits. They were much more
carnivorous in character than the blacks, and their
great bodily strength and power enabled them to
master all of the myriad forms of game in the Ore-
gon woods. By the same token, they could take a
full-grown steer and carry it off as a woman car-
ries her baby.
It couldn't be endured. The cattlemen had be-
gun to settle the valleys, and it was either a case of
killing the grizzlies or yielding the valleys to them.
In the relentless war that followed, the breed had
been practically wiped out. A few of them, per-
haps, fled farther and farther up the Cascades, find-
ing refuges in the Canadian mountains. Others
traveled east, locating at last in the Rocky Moun-
tains, and countless numbers of them died. At last,
as far as the frontiersmen knew, only one great
specimen remained. This was a famous bear that
men called Slewfoot, — a magnificent animal that
ranged far and hunted relentlessly, and no one ever
knew just when they were going to run across him.
It made traveling in the mountains a rather tick-
lish business. He was apt suddenly to loom up,
like a gray cliff, at any turn in the trail, and his dis-
H2 The Strength of the Pines
position grew querulous with age. In fact, instead
of fleeing as most wild creatures have learned to
do, he was rather likely to make sudden and unex-
pected charges.
He was killed at last ; and seemingly the Southern
Oregon grizzlies were wiped out. But it is rather
easy to believe that in some of his wanderings he en-
countered— lost and far in the deepest heart of the
land called Trail's End — a female of his own
breed. There must have been cubs who, in their
turn, mated and fought and died, and perhaps two
generations after them. And out of the last brood
had emerged a single great male, a worthy descend-
ant of his famous ancestor. This was the Killer,
who in a few months since he had left his fastnesses,
was beginning to ruin the cattle business in Trail's
End.
As he came growling from his bed this Septem-
ber evening he was not a creature to speak of lightly.
He was down on all fours, his vast head was lowered,
his huge fangs gleamed in the dark red mouth. The
eyes were small, and curious little red lights glowed
in each of them. The Killer was cross; and he
did n't care who knew it. He was hungry too ; but
hunger is an emotion for the beasts of prey to keep
carefully to themselves. He walked slowly across
the little glen, carelessly at first, for he was too
cross and out of temper to have the patience to
stalk. He stopped, turning his head this way and
that, marking the flight of the wild creatures. He
saw a pair of blacktail bucks spring up from a cov-
ert and dash away; but he only made one short, an-
The Blood Atonement 113
gry lunge toward them. He knew that it would
only cost him his dignity to try to chase them. A
grizzly bear can move astonishingly fast consider-
ing his weight — for a short distance he can keep
pace with a running horse — but a deer is light it-
self. He littered one short, low growl, then headed
over toward a great wall of buckbush at the base of
the hill.
But now his hunting cunning had begun to return
to him. The sun was setting, the pines were grow-
ing dusky, and he began to feel the first excitement
and fever that the fall of night always brings to
the beasts of prey. It is a feeling that his insignifi-
cant cousins, the black bears, could not possibly
have, — for the sole reason that they are berry-eat-
ers, not hunters. But the cougar, stealing down a
deer trail on the ridge above, and a lean old male
wolf — stalking a herd of deer on the other side
of the thicket — understood it very well. His
blood began to roll faster through his great veins.
The sullen glare grew in his eyes.
It was the beginning of the hunting hour of the
larger creatures. All the forest world knew it.
The air seemed to throb and tingle, the shadowing
thickets began to pulse and stir with life. The
Fear — the age-old heritage of all the hunted crea-
tures — returned to the deer.
The Killer moved quite softly now. One would
have marveled how silently his great feet fell upon
the dry earth and with what slight sound his heavy
form moved through the thickets. Once he halted,
gazing with reddening eyes. But the coyote —
ii4 The Strength of the Pines
the gray figure that had broken a twig on the trail
beside him — slipped quickly away.
He skirted the thicket, knowing that no success-
ful stalk could be made where he had to force his
way through dry brush. He moved slowly, cau-
tiously— all the time mounting farther up the little
hill that rose from the banks of the stream. He
came to an opening in the thicket, a little brown
pathway that vanished quickly into the shadows of
the coverts.
The Killer slipped softly into the heavy brush
just at its mouth. It was his ambush. Soon, he
knew, some of the creatures that had bowers in the
heart of the thicket would be coming along that
trail toward the feeding grounds on the ridge. He
only had to wait.
As the shadows grew and the twilight deepened,
the undercurrent of savagery that is the eternal
quality of the wilderness grew ever more pro-
nounced. A thrill and fever came in the air, mys-
tery in the deepening shadows, and brighter lights
into the eyes of the hunting folk. The dusk deep-
ened between the trees ; the distant trunks dimmed
and faded quite away. The stars emerged. The
nightwind, rising somewhere in the region of the
snow banks on the highest mountains, b^ew down
into the Killer's face and brought messages that no
human being may ever receive. Then his sharp
ears heard the sound of brush cracked softly as some
one of the larger forest creatures came up the trail
toward him.
The steps drew nearer and the Killer recognized
The Blood Atonement 115
them. They were plainly the soft footfall of some
member of the deer tribe, yet they were too pro-
nounced to be the step of any of the lesser deer.
The bull elk had left his bed. The red eyes of the
grizzly seemed to glow as he waited. Great though
the stag was, only one little blow of the massive fore-
arm would be needed. The huge fangs would have
to close down but once. The long, many-tined
antlers, the sharp front hoofs would not avail him
in a surprise attack such as this would be. Best of
all, he was not suspecting danger. He was walk-
ing down wind, so that the pungent odor of the bear
was blown away from him.
The bear did not move a single telltale muscle.
He scarcely breathed. And the one movement that
there was was such that not even the keen ears of an
elk could discern, just a curious erection of the gray
hairs on his vast neck.
The bull was almost within striking range now.
The wicked red eyes could already discern the dim-
mest shadow of his outline through the thickets.
But all at once he stopped, head lifting.
Perhaps a grizzly bear does not have mental
processes as human beings know them. Per-
haps all impulse is the result of instinct alone, —
instinct tuned and trained to a degree that human
beings find hard to imagine. But if the bear
could n't understand the sudden halt just at the eve
of his triumph, at least he felt growing anger. He
knew perfectly that the elk had neither detected his
odor nor heard him, and he had made no movements
that the sharp eyes could detect. Just a glimpse of
1 1 6 The Strength of the Pines
gray in the heavy brush would not have been enough
in itself to arouse the stag's suspicions. For the
lower creatures are rarely able to interpret outline
alone ; there must be movement too.
Yet the bull was evidently alarmed. He stood
immobile, one foot lifted, nostrils open, head raised.
Then, the wind blowing true, the grizzly under-
stood.
A pungent smell reached him from below, — evi-
dently the smell of a living creature that followed
the trail along the stream that flowed through the
glen. He recognized it in an instant. He had de-
tected it many times, particularly when he went into
the cleared lands to kill cattle. It was man, an
odor almost unknown in this lonely glen. Dave
Turner, brother of Simon, was walking down the
stream toward Hudson's camp.
The elk was widely traveled too, and he also real-
ized the proximity of man. But his reaction was
entirely different. To the grizzly it was an annoy-
ing interruption to his hunt; and a great flood of
rage swept over him. It seemed to him that these
tall creatures were always crossing his path, spoil-
ing his hunting, even questioning his rule of the
forests. They did not seem to realize that he was
the wilderness king, and that he could break their
slight forms in two with one blow of his paw. It
was true that their eyes had strange powers to dis-
quiet him; but his isolation in the fastnesses of
Trail's End had kept him from any full recognition
of their real strength, and he was unfortunately
lacking in the awe with which most of the forest
The Blood Atonement 117
creatures regard them. But to the elk this smell
was Fear itself. He knew the ways of men only
too well. 'Too many times he had seen members of
his herd fall stricken at a word from the glittering
sticks they carried in their hands. He uttered a
far-ringing snort.
It was a distinctive sound, beginning rather high
on the scale as a loud whistle and descending into
a deep bass bawl. And the Killer knew perfectly
what that sound meant. It was a simple way of
saying that the elk would progress no further down
that trail. The bear leaped in wild fury.
A growl that was more near a puma-like snarl
came from between the bared teeth, and the great
body lunged out with incredible speed. Although
the distance was far, the charge was almost a suc-
cess. If one second had intervened before the elk
saw the movement, if his muscles had not been
fitted out with invisible wings, he would have fought
no more battles with his herd brethren in the fall.
The bull seemed to leap straight up. His muscles
had been set at his first alarm from Turner's smell
on the wind, and they drove forth the powerful limbs
as if by a powder explosion. He was full in the air
when the forepaws battered down where he had
been. Then he darted away into the coverts.
The grizzly knew better than to try to overtake
him. Almost rabid with wrath he turned back to
his ambush.
XV
SIMON TURNER had given Dave very definite in-
structions concerning his embassy to Hudson.
They were given in the gre^house that Simon oc-
cupied, in the same room, ligmedT)y the fire's glow,
from which instructions had gone out to the clan so
many times before. " The first thing this Bruce
will do," Simon had said, " is to hunt up Hudson —
the one living man that witnessed that agreement
between Ross and old Folger. One re%son is that
he '11 want to verify Linda's story. The next is to
persuade the old man to go down to the courts with
him as his witness. And what you have to do is
line him up on our side first."
Dave had felt Simon's eyes upon him, so he
did n't look straight up. " And that 's what the
hundred is for? " he asked.
"Of course. Get the old man's word that he '11
tell Bruce he never witnessed any such agreement.
Maybe fifty dollars will do it; the old trapper is
pretty hard up, I reckon. He 'd make us a lot of
trouble if Bruce got him as a witness."
1 You think - Dave's eyes wandered about
the room, " you think that 's the best way? "
" I would n't be tellin' you to do it if I did n't
think so." Simon laughed, — a sudden, grim syl-
The Blood Atonement 119
lable. " Dave, you 're a blood-thirsty devil. I see
what you 're thinking of — of a safer way to keep
him from telling. But you know the word I
sent out. ' Go easy ! ' That 's the wisest course
to follow at present. The valley people pay
more attention to such things than they used to;
the fewer the killings, the wiser we will be. If
he '11 keep quiet for the hundred let him have it in
peace."
Dave had n't forgotten. But his features were
sharper and more ratlike than ever when he came in
sight of Hudson's camp, just after the fall of dark-
ness of the second day out. The trapper was cook-
ing his simple meal, — a blue grouse frying in his
skillec, coffee boiling, and flapjack batter ready for
the moment, the grouse was done. He was kneel-
ing close to the coals ; the firelight cast a red glow
over him, and the picture started a train of rather
pleasing conjectures in Dave's mind.
He halted in the shadows and stood a moment
watching. After all he wasn't greatly different
from the wolf that watched by the deer trail or the
Killer in his ambush, less than a mile distant in the
glen. The same strange, dark passion that was
over them both was over him also. One could see
it in the almost imperceptible drawing back of his
dark lips over his teeth. There was just a hint of
it in the lurid eyes.
Dave's thought returned to the hundred dollars
in his pocket, — a good sum in the hills. A brass
rifle cartridge, such as he could fire in. the thirty-
thirty that he carried in the hollow of his arm, cost
I2O The Strength of the Pines
only about six cents. The net gain would be —
the figures flew quickly through his mind — ninety-
nine dollars and ninety- four cents; quite a good
piece of business for Dave. But the trouble was
that Simon might find out.
It was not, he remembered, that Simon was ad-
verse to this sort of operation when necessary.
Perhaps the straight-out sport of the thing meant
more to him than to Dave ; he was a braver man and
more primitive in impulse. There were certain
memory pictures in Dave's mind of this younger,
more powerful brother of his ; and he smiled grimly
when he recalled them. They had been wild,
strange^ scenes of long ago, usually in the pale light
of the moon, and he could recall Simon's face with
singular clearness. There had always beer* the
same drawing back of the lips, the same gusty
breathing, the same strange little flakes of fire in the
savage eyes. He had always trembled all over too,
but not from fear ; and Dave remembered especially
well the little drama outside Matthew Folger's
cabin in the darkness. He was no stranger to the
blood madness, this brother of his, and the clan had
high hopes for him even in his growing days. And
he had fulfilled those hopes. Never could the fact
be doubted! He could still make a fresh notch in
his rifle stock with the same rapture. But the word
had gone out, for the present at least, to " go easy."
Such little games as occurred to Dave now — as he
watched the trapper in the firelight with one hun-
dred dollars of the clan's money in his own pocket —
had been prohibited until further notice.
The Blood Atonement 121
The thing looked so simple that Dave squirmed
all over with annoyance. It hurt him to think that the
hundred dollars that he carried was to be passed
over, without a wink of an eye, to this bearded trap-
per ; and the only return for it was to be a promise
that Hudson would not testify in Bruce's behalf.
And a hundred dollars was real money ! It was to
be thought of twice. On the other hand, it would be
wholly impossible for one that lies face half -buried
in the pine needles beside a dead fire to make any
kind of testimony whatsoever. It would come to
the same thing, and the hundred dollars would still
be in his pocket. Just a little matter of a single
glance down his rifle barrel at the figure in the sil-
houette of the fire glow — and a half -ounce of pres-
sure on the hair trigger. Half jesting with himself,
he dropped on one knee and raised the weapon.
The trapper did not guess his presence. The blood
leaped in Dave's veins.
It would be so easy; the drawing back of the
hammer would be only the work of a second ; and an
instant's peering through the sights was all that
would be needed further. His body trembled as if
with passion, as he started to draw back the hammer.
But he caught himself with a wrench. He had a
single second of vivid introspection; and what he
saw filled his cunning eyes with wonder. There
would have been no holding back, once the rifle was
cocked and he saw the man through the sights.
The blood madness would have been too strong to
resist. He felt as might one who, taking a few in-
jections of morphine on prescription, finds himself
122 The Strength of the Pines
inadvertently with a loaded needle in his hands. He
knew a moment of remorse — so overwhelming that
it was almost terror — that the shedding of blood
had become so easy to him. He had n't known how
easy it had been to learn. He did n't know that a
vice is nothing but a lust that has been given free
play so many times that the will can no longer re-
strain it.
But the sight of Hudson's form, sitting down now
to his meal, dispelled his remorse quickly. After
all, his own course would have been the simplest way
to handle the matter. There would be no danger
that Hudson would double-cross them then. But
he realized that Simon had spoken true when he said
that the old days were gone, that the arm of the law
reached farther than formerly, and it might even
stretch to this far place. He remembered Simon's
instructions. ' The quieter we can do these things,
the better," the clan leader had said. " If we can get
through to October thirtieth with no killings, the
safer it is for us. We don't know how the tender-
feet in the valley are going to act — there is n't the
same feeling about blood-feuds that there used to
be. Go easy, Dave. Sound this Hudson out. If
he '11 keep still for a hundred, let him have it in
peace."
Dave slipped his rifle into the hollow of his arm
and continued on down the trail. He didn't try
to stalk. In a moment Hudson heard his step and
looked up. They met in a circle of firelight.
It is not the mountain way to fraternize quickly,
nor are the mountain men quick to show astonish-
The Blood Atonement 123
ment. Hudson had not seen another human being
since his last visit to the settlements. Yet his voice
indicated no surprise at this visitation.
" Howdy," he grunted.
" Howdy," Dave replied. " How about grub? "
" Help yourself. Supper just ready."
Dave helped himself to the food of the man that,
a moment before, he would have slain; and in the
light of the high fire that followed the meal, he got
down to the real business of the visit.
Dave knew that a fairly straight course was best.
It was general knowledge through the hills that the
Turners had gouged the Rosses of their lands and it
was absurd to think that Hudson did not realize
the true state of affairs. " I suppose you Ve for-
gotten that little deed you witnessed between old
Mat Folger and Ross — twenty years ago," Dave
began easily, his pipe between his teeth.
Hudson turned with a cunning glitter in his eyes.
Dave saw it and grew bolder. ' Who wants me
to forget it? "Hudson demanded.
" I ain't said that anybody wants you to," Dave
responded. " I asked if you had."
Hudson was still a moment, stroking absently his
beard. "If you want to know," he said, " I ain't
forgotten. But there was n't just a deed. There
was an agreement too."
Dave nodded. Hudson's eyes traveled to his
rifle, — for the simple reason that he wanted to
know just how many jumps he would be obliged to
make to reach it in case of emergencies. Such
things are good to know in meetings like this. »
124 The Strength of the Pines
" I know all about that agreement," Dave con-
fessed.
" You do, eh? So do I. I ain't likely to for-
get."
Dave studied him closely. ' What good is it go-
ing to do you to remember? " he demanded.
" I ain't saying that it ?s going to do me any good.
At present I ain't got nothing against the Turners.
They Ve always been all right to me. What 's be-
tween them and the Rosses is past and done — al-
though I know just in what way Folger held that
land and no transfer from him to you was legal.
But that 's all part of the past. As long as the
Turners continue to be my friends I don't see why
anything should be said about it."
Dave did not misunderstand him. He did n't
in the least assume that these friendly words meant
that he could go back to the ranches with the hun-
dred dollars still in his pocket. It meant merely
that Hudson was open to reason and it would n't
have to be a shooting affair.
Dave speculated. It was wholly plain that the
old man had not yet heard of Bruce's return.
There was no need to mention him. " We 're glad
you are our friend," Dave went on. " But we don't
expect no one to stay friends with us unless they
benefit to some small extent by it. How many furs
do you hope to take this year? "
" Not enough to pay to pack out. Maybe two
hundred dollars in bounties before New Year-
coyotes and wolves. Maybe a little better in the
three months following in furs."
The Blood Atonement 125
' Then maybe fifty or seventy-five dollars, with-
out bothering to set the traps, wouldn't come in so
bad."
" It would n't come in bad, but it does n't buy
much these days. A hundred would do better."
" A hundred it is," Dave told him with finality.
The eyes above the dark beard shone in the fire-
light. " I 'd forget I had a mother for a hundred
dollars," he said. He watched, greedily, as Dave's
gaunt hand went into his pocket. " I 'm gettin'
old, Dave. Every dollar is harder for me to get.
The wolves are gettin' wiser, the mink are fewer.
There ain't much that I would n't do for a hundred
dollars now. You know how it is."
Yes, Dave knew. The money changed hands.
The fire burned down. They sat a long time, deep
in their own thoughts.
" All we ask," Dave said, " is that you don't take
sides against us."
" I '11 remember. Of course you want me, in case
I 'm ever subpoenaed, to recall signing the deed it-
self."
" Yes, we 'd want you to testify to that."
" Of course. If there had n't been any kind of a
deed, Folger could n't have deeded the property to
you. But how would it be, if any one asks me about
it, to swear that there never was no secret agree-
ment, but a clear transfer; and to make it sound
reasonable for me to say — to say that Ross was
forced to deed the land to Folger because he 'd had
goings-on with Folger's wife, and Folger was
about to kill him? "
126 The Strength of the Pines
The only response, at first, was the slightest, al-
most imperceptible narrowing of Dave's eyes. He
had considerable native cunning, but such an idea as
this had never occurred to him. But he was crafty
enough to see its tremendous possibilities at once.
All that either Simon or himself had hoped for was
that the old man would not testify in Bruce's be-
half. But he saw that such a story, coming from
the apparently honest old trapper, might have a
profound effect upon Bruce. Dave understood hu-
man nature well enough to know that he would
probably lose faith in the entire enterprise. To
Bruce it had been nothing but an old woman's story,
after all ; it was wholly possible that he would relin-
quish all effort to return the lands to Linda Ross.
Men always can believe stranger things of sex than
any other thing ; Bruce would in all prftbability find
Hudson's story much more logical than the one
Linda had told him under the pine. It was worth
one hundred dollars, after all.
" I '11 bet you could make him swallow it, hook,
bait, and sinker," Dave responded at last, flattering.
They chuckled together in the darkness. Then
they turned to the blankets.
" I '11 show you another trail out to-morrow,"
Hudson told him. " It comes into the glen that
you passed to-night — the canyon that the Killer
has been using lately for a hunting ground."
XVI
THE Killer had had an unsuccessful night. He
had waited the long hours through at the mouth of
the trail, but only the Little People — such as the
rabbits and similar folk that hardly constituted a
single bite in his great jaws — had come his way.
Now it was morning and it looked as if he would
have to go hungry.
The thought did n't improve his already doubtful
mood. He wanted to growl. The only thing that
kept him from it was the realization that it would
frighten away any living creature that might be ap-
proaching toward him up the trail. He started to
stretch his great muscles, intending to leave his am-
bush. But all at once he froze again into a lifeless
gray patch in the thickets.
There were light steps on the trail. Again they
were the steps of deer, — but not of the great, wary
elk this time. Instead it was just a fawn, or a
yearling doe at least, such a creature as had not yet
learned to suspect every turn in the trail. The
morning light was steadily growing, the stars were
all dimmed or else entirely faded in the sky, and it
would have been highly improbable that a full-
grown buck in his wisdom would draw within leap-
ing range without detecting him. But he hadn't
128 The Strength of the Pines
the slightest doubt about the fawn. They were in-
nocent people, — and their flesh was very tender.
The forest gods had been good to him, after all.
He peered through the thickets, and in a moment
more he had a glimpse of the spotted skin. It was
almost too easy. The fawn was stealing toward
him with mincing steps — as graceful a creature as
dwelt in all this wilderness world of grace — and its
eyes were soft and tender as a girl's. It was evi-
dently giving no thought to danger, only rejoicing
that the fearful hours of night were done. The
mountain lion had already sought its lair. The
fawn did n't know that a worse, terror still lingered
at the mouth of the trail.
But even as the Killer watched, the prize was
simply taken out of his mouth. A gray wolf — a
savage old male that also had just finished an un-
successful hunt — had been stealing through the
thickets in search of a lair, and he came out on the
trail not fifty feet distant, halfway between the
bear and the fawn. The one was almost as sur-
prised as the other. The fawn turned with a fright-
ened bleat and darted away; the wolf swung into
pursuit.
The bear lunged forward with a howl of rage.
He leaped into the trail mouth, then ran as fast as
he could in pursuit of the running wolf. He was
too enraged to stop to think that a grizzly bear has
never yet been able to overtake a wolf, once the trim
legs got well into action. At first he could n't think
about anything; he had been cheated too many
times. His first impulse was one of tremendous
The Blood Atonement 129
and overpowering wrath, — a fury that meant death
to the first living creature that he met.
But in a single second he realized that this wild
chase was fairly good tactics, after all. The
chances for a meal were still rather good. The
fawn and the wolf were in the open now, and it was
wholly evident that the gray hunter would overtake
the quarry in another moment. It was true that
the Killer would miss the pleasure of slaying his own
game, — the ecstatic blow to the shoulder and the
bite to the throat that followed it. In this case,
the wolf would do that part of the work for him.
It was just a simple matter of driving the creature
away from his dead.
The fawn reached the stream bank, then went
bounding down the margin. The distance short-
ened between them. It was leaping wildly, already
almost exhausted ; the wolf raced easily, body close
to the ground, in long, tireless strides. The grizzly
bear sped behind him.
But at that instant fate took a hand in this merry
little chase. To the fawn, it was nothing but a
sharp clang of metal behind him and an answering
shriek of pain, — sounds that in its terror it heard
but dimly. But it was an unlooked-for and tragic
reality to the wolf. His leap was suddenly arrested
in mid-air, and he was hurled to the ground with
stunning force. Cruel metal teeth had seized his
leg, and a strong chain held him when he tried to
escape. He fought it with desperate savagery.
The fawn leaped on to safety.
But there was no need of the grizzly continuing
130 The Strength of the Pines
its pursuit. Everything had turned out quite well
for him, after all. A wolf is ever so much more fill-
ing than any kind of seasonal fawn; and the old
gray pack leader was imprisoned and helpless in
one of Hudson's traps.
In the first gray of morning, Dave Turner started
back toward his home. " I '11 go with you to the
forks in the trail," Hudson told him. " I want to
take a look at some of my traps, anyhow."
Turner had completed his business none too soon.
At the same hour — as soon as it was light enough
to see — Bruce was finishing his breakfast in prep-
aration for the last lap of his journey. He had
passed the night by a spring on a long ridge, almost
in eye range of Hudson's camp. Now he was pre-
paring to dip down into the Killer's glen.
Turner and Hudson followed up the little creek,
walking almost in silence. It is a habit all mountain
men fall into, sooner or later, — not to waste words.
The great silences of the wild places seem to forbid
it. Hudson walked ahead, Turner possibly a dozen
feet behind him. And because of the carpet of pine
needles, the forest creatures could hardly hear them
come.
Occasionally they caught glimpses of the wild
life that teemed about them, but they experienced
none of the delight that had made the two- day tramp
such a pleasure to Bruce. Hudson thought in
terms of pelts only; no creature that did not wear
a marketable hide was worth a glance. Turner did
not feel even this interest.
The Blood Atonement 131
The first of Hudson's sets proved empty. The
second was about a turn in the creek, and a wall of
brush made it impossible for him to tell at a distance
whether or not he had made a catch. But when
still a quarter of a mile distant, Hudson heard a
sound that he thought he recognized. It was a high,
sharp, agonized bark that dimmed into a low whine.
" I believe I Ve got a coyote or a wolf up there,"
he said. They hastened their steps.
" And you use that little pea-gun for wolves? "
Dave Turner asked. He pointed to the short-bar-
reled, twenty-two caliber rifle that was slung on the
trapper's back. " It does n't look like it would kill
a mosquito."
" A killer gun," Hudson explained. " For pol-
ishin' 'em off when they are alive in the traps. Of
course, it would n't be no good more 'n ten feet
away, and then you have to aim at a vital spot. But
I Ve heard tell of animals I would n't want to meet
with that thirty-thirty of yours."
This was true enough. Dave had heard of them
also. A thirty-thirty is a powerful weapon, but it
isn't an elephant gun. They hurried on, Dave
very anxious to watch the execution that would
shortly ensue if whatever animal had cried from the
trap was still alive. Such things were only the
day's work to Hudson, but Dave felt a little tingle
of anticipation. And the thought damned him be-
yond redemption.
But instead of the joy of killing a cowering, ter-
ror-stricken animal, helpless in the trap, the wilder-
ness had made other plans for Hudson and Dave.
132 The Strength of the Pines
They hastened about the impenetrable wall of brush,
and in one glance they knew that more urgent busi-
ness awaited them.
The whole picture loomed suddenly before their
eyes. There was no wolf in the trap. The steel
had sprung, certainly, but only a hideous fragment
of a foot remained between the jaws. The bone
had been broken sharply off, as a man might break
a match in his fingers. There was no living wolf
for Hudson to execute with his killer gun. Life
had gone out of the gray body many minutes before.
The two men saw all these things as a background
only, — dim details about the central figure. But
the thing that froze them in their tracks with terror
was the great, gray form of the Killer, not twenty
feet distant, beside the mangled body of the wolf.
The events that followed thereafter came in such
quick succession as to seem simultaneous. For one
fraction of an instant all three figures stood mo-
tionless, the two men staring, the grizzly half -lean-
ing over his prey, his head turned, his little red eyes
full of hatred. Too many times this night he had
missed his game. It was the same intrusion that
had angered him before, — slight figures to break to
pieces with one blow. Perhaps — for no man may
trace fully the mental processes of animals — his
fury fully transcended the fear that he must have
instinctively felt; at least, he did not even attempt
to flee. He uttered one hoarse, savage note, a
sound in which all his hatred and his fury and his
savage power were made manifest, whirled with in-
credible speed, and charged.
The Blood Atonement 133
The lunge seemed only a swift passing of gray
light. No eye could believe that the vast form could
move with such swiftness. There was little impres-
sion of an actual leap. Rather it was just a blow;
the great form, huddled over the dead wolf, had
simply reached the full distance to Hudson.
The man did not even have time to turn. There
was no defense; his killer-gun was strapped on his
back, and even if it had been in his hands, its little
bullet would not have mattered the sting of a bee in
honey-robbing. The only possible chance of break-
ing that deadly charge lay in the thirty-thirty deer
rifle in Dave's arms ; but the craven who he.ld it did
not even fire. He was standing just below the out-
stretched limb of a tree, and the weapon fell from
his hands as he swung up into the limb. The fact
that Hudson stood weaponless, ten feet away in the
clearing, did not deter him in the least.
No human flesh could stand against that charge.
The vast paw fell with resistless force ; and no need
arose for a second blow. The trapper's body was
struck down as if felled by a meteor, and the power
of the impact forced it deep into the carpet of pine
needles. The savage creature turned, the white
fangs caught the light in the open mouth. The
head lunged toward the man's shoulder.
No man may say what agony Hudson would have
endured in the last few seconds of his life if the
Killer had been given time and opportunity. His
usual way was to linger long, sharp fangs closing
again and again, until all living likeness was de-
stroyed. The blood-lust was upon him; there
134 The Strength of the Pines
would have been no mercy to the dying creature
in the pine needles. Yet it transpired that Hud-
son's flesh was not to know those rending fangs a
second time. Although it is an unfamiliar thing in
the wilderness, the end of Hudson's trail was peace-
ful, after all.
On the hillside above, a stranger to this land had
dropped to his knee in the shrubbery, his rifle lifted
to the level of his eyes. It was Bruce, who had
come in time to see the charge through a rift in the
trees.
XVII
THERE were deep significances in the fact that
Bruce kept his head in this moment of crisis. It
meant nothing less than an iron self-control such as
only the strongest men possess, and it meant nerves
steady as steel bars.
The bear was on Hudson, and the man had gone
down, before Bruce even interpreted him. Then it
was just a gray patch, a full three hundred yards
away. His instinct was to throw the gun to his
shoulder and fire without aiming; yet he conquered
it with an iron will. But he did move quickly. He
dropped to his knee the single second that the gun
leaped to his shoulder. He seemed to know that
from a lower position the target would be more
clearly revealed. The finger pressed back against
the trigger.
The distance was far; Bruce was not a prac-
ticed rifle shot, and it bordered on the miraculous
that his lead went anywhere near the bear's body.
And it was true that the bullet did not reach a vital
place. It stung like a wasp at the Killer's flank,
however, cutting a shallow flesh wound. But it was
enough to take his dreadful attention from the mor-
tally wounded trapper in the pine needles.
He whirled about, growling furiously and biting
at the wound. Then he stood still, turning his gaze
136 The Strength of the Pines
first to the pale face of Dave Turner thirty feet
above him in the pine. The eyes glowed in fury
and hatred. He had found men out at last; they
died even more easily than the fawn. He started
to turn back to the fallen, and the rifle spoke again.
It was a complete miss, this time; yet the bear
leaped in fear when the bullet thwacked into the
dust beside him. He did not wait for a third. His
caution suddenly returning to him, and perhaps his
anger somewhat satiated by the blow he had dealt
Hudson, he crashed into the security of the thicket.
Bruce waited a single instant, hoping for an-
other glimpse of the creature ; then ran down to aid
Hudson. But in driving the bear from the trap-
per's helpless body he had already given all the aid
that he could. Understanding came quickly. He
had arrived only in time for the Departure, — just
a glimpse of a light as it faded. The blow had been
more than any human being could survive ; even now
Hudson was entering upon that strange calm which
often, so mercifully, immediately precedes death.
He opened his eyes and looked with some wonder
into Bruce's face. The light in them was dimming,
fading like a twilight, yet there was indication of
neither confusion nor delirium. Hudson, in that
last moment of his life, was quite himself.
There was, however, some indication of perplex-
ity at the peculiar turn affairs had taken. ' You 're
not Dave Turner," he said wonderingly.
Dim though the voice was, there was considerable
emphasis in the tone. Hudson seemed quite sure of
this point, whether or not he knew anything con-
The Blood Atonement 137
cerning the dark gates he was about to enter. He
wouldn't have spoken greatly different if he had
been sitting in perfect health before his own camp
fire and the shadow was now already so deep his
eyes could scarcely penetrate it.
" No," Bruce answered. " Dave Turner is up a
tree. He did n't even wait to shoot."
" Of course he would n't." Hudson spoke with
assurance. The words dimmed at the end, and he
half-closed his eyes as if he were too sleepy to stay
awake longer. Then Bruce saw a strange thing.
He saw, unmistakable as the sun in the sky, the
signs of a curious struggle in the man's face. There
was a singular deepening of the lines, a twitching of
the muscles, a queer set to the lips and jaws. They
were as much signs of battle as the sound of firing
a general hears from far away.
The trapper — a moment before sinking into the
calm of death — was fighting desperately for a few
moments of respite. There could be no other ex-
planation. And he won it at last, — an interlude of
half a dozen breaths. "Who are you? " he whis-
pered.
Bruce bowed his head until his ear was close to
the lips. " Bruce Folger," he answered, — for the
first time in his knowledge speaking his full name.
" Son of Matthew Folger who lived at Trail's End
long ago."
The man still struggled. " I knew it," he said.
" I saw it — in your face. I see — everything now.
Listen — can you hear me? "
" Yes."
138 The Strength of the Pines
" I just did a wrong — there 's a hundred dollars
in my pocket that I just got for doing it. I made a
promise — to lie to you. Take the money — it
ought to be yours, anyway — and hers ; and use it
toward fighting the wrong. It will go a little way."
' Yes," Bruce looked him full in the eyes.
" No matter about the money. What did you
promise Turner? "
" That I 'd lie to you. Grip my arms with your
hands — till it hurts. I 've only got one breath
more. Your father held those lands only in trust
— the Turners' deed is forged. And the secret
agreement that I witnessed is hidden — "
The breath seemed to go out of the man. Bruce
shook him by the shoulders. Dave, still in the tree,
strained to hear the rest. " Yes — where? "
"It's hidden — just — out- The words
were no longer audible to Dave, and what followed
Bruce also strained to hear in vain. The lips ceased
moving. The shadow grew in the eyes, and the lids
flickered down over them. A traveler had gone.
Bruce got up, a strange, cold light in his eyes.
He glanced up. Dave Turner was climbing slowly
down the tree. Bruce made six strides and seized
his rifle.
The effect on Dave was ludicrous. He clung
fast to the tree limbs, as if he thought a bullet —
like a grizzly's claws — could not reach him there.
Bruce laid the gun behind him, then stood waiting
with his own weapon resting in his arms.
" Come down, Dave," he commanded'. ' The
bear is gone."
The Blood Atonement 139
Dave crept down the trunk and halted at its base.
He studied the cold face before him. " Better not
try nothing," he advised hoarsely.
" Why not ? " Bruce asked. " Do you think I 'm
afraid of a coward? " The man started at the
words; his head bobbed backward as if Bruce had
struck him beneath the jaw with his fist.
" People don't call the Turners cowards and walk
off with it," the man told him.
" Oh, the lowest coward! " Bruce said between
set teeth. " The yellowest, mongrel coward ! Your
own confederate — and you had to drop your gun
and run up a tree. You might have stopped the
bear's charge."
Dave's face twisted in a scowl. ' You 're brave
enough now. Wait to see what happens later.
Give me my gun. I 'm going to go."
" You can go, but you don't get your gun. I '11
fill you full of lead if you try to touch it."
Dave looked up with some care. He wanted to
know for certain if this tenderfoot meant what he
said. The man was blind in some things, his vision
was twisted and dark, but he made no mistake about
the look on the cold, set face before him. Bruce's
finger was curled about the trigger, and it looked
to Dave as if it itched to exert further pressure.
" I don't see why I spare you, anyway," Bruce
went on. His tone was self -reproachful. " God
knows I had n't ought to — remembering who and
what you are. If you 'd only give me one little bit
of provocation — "
Dave saw lurid lights growing in the man's eyes ;
140 The Strength of the Pines
and all at once a conclusion came to him. He de-
cided he 'd make no further effort to regain the gun.
His life was rather precious to him, strangely, and
it was wholly plain that a dread and terrible passion
was slowly creeping over his enemy. He could see
it in the darkening face, the tight grip of the hands
on the rifle stock. His own sharp features grew
more cunning. " You ought to be glad I did n't
stop the bear with my rifle," he said hurriedly. " I
had Hudson bribed — you would n't have found out
something that you did find out if he had n't lain
here dying. You would n't have learned — '
But the sentence died in the middle. Bruce made
answer to it. For once in his life Dave's cunning
had not availed him ; he had said the last thing in the
world that he should have said, the one thing that
was needed to cause an explosion. He hadn't
known that some men have standards other than
self gain. And some small measure of realization
came to him when he felt the dust his full length
under him.
Bruce's answer had been a straight-out blow with
his flst, with all his strength behind it, in the very
center of his enemy's face.
XVIII
IN his years of residence at Trail's End, Dave
Turner had acquired a thorough knowledge of all
its paths. That knowledge stood him in good stead
now. He wished to cross the ridges to Simon's
house at least an hour before Bruce could return to
Linda.
He traveled hard and late, and he reached Si-
mon's door just before sundown of the second day.
Bruce was still a full two hours distant. But
Dave did not stay to knock. It was chore-time, and
he thought he would find Simon in his barn, super-
vising the feeding and care of the livestock. He
had guessed right, and the two men had a moment's
talk in the dusky passage behind the stalls.
" I 've brought news," Dave said.
Simon made no answer at first. The saddle pony
in the stall immediately in front of them, frightened
at Dave's unfamiliar figure, had crowded, trem-
bling, against his manger. Simon's red eyes watched
him; then he uttered a short oath. He took two
strides into the stall and seized the halter rope in his
huge, muscular hand. Three times he jerked it
with a peculiar, quartering pull, a curbing that
might have been ineffective by a man of ordinary
strength, but with the incomprehensible might of
the great forearm behind it was really terrible pun-
ishment. Dave thought for a moment his brother
142 The Strength of the Pines
would break the animal's neck ; the whites began to
show about the soft, dark pupils of its eyes. The
strap over the head broke with the fourth pull ; then
the horse recoiled, plunging and terrified, into the
opposite corner of the stall.
Simon leaped with shattering power at the crea-
ture's shoulders, his huge arms encircled its neck,
his shoulders heaved, and he half -threw it to the
floor. Then, as it staggered to rise, his heavy fist
flailed against its neck. Again and again he struck,
and in the half-darkness of the stable it was a dread-
ful thing to behold. The man's fury, always
quickly aroused, was upon him; his brawny form
moved with the agility of a panther. Even Dave,
whose shallow eyes were usually wont to feast on
cruelty, viewed the scene with some alarm. It
was n't that he was moved by the agony of the horse.
But he did remember that horses cost money, and
Simon seemed determined to kill the animal before
his passion was spent.
The horse cowered, and in a moment more it was
hard to remember he was a member of a noble, high-
spirited breed, — a swift runner, brainy as a dog, a
servant faithful and worthy. It was no longer easy
to think of him as a creature of beauty, — and there
is no other word than beauty for these long-maned,
long-tailed, trim-lined animals. He stood quiet at
last, his head hanging low, knees bent, eyes curi-
ously sorrowful and dark. Simon fastened the
broken strap about his neck, gave it one more jerk
that almost knocked the animal off his feet, then
turned back to Dave. Except for a higher color in
The Blood Atonement 143
cheeks, darker lights in his eyes, and an almost
imperceptible quickening of his breathing, it did not
seem as if he had moved.
" You 're always bringing news," he said.
Dave opened his eyes. He had forgotten his own
words in the tumult of the fight he had just watched,
but plainly Simon had n't forgotten. He opened
his mouth to speak.
"Well, what is it? Out with it," his brother
urged. " If it 's as important as some of the other
news you 've brought don't take my time."
" All right," the other replied suUenly. " You
don't have to hear it. But I 'm telling you it 's of
real importance this time — and sometime you '11
find out." He scowled into the dark face. " But
suit yourself."
He turned as if to go. He rather thought that
Simon would call him back. It would be, in a
measure, a victory. But Simon went back to his in-
spection of the stalls.
Dave walked clear to the door, then turned.
" Don't be a fool, Simon," he urged. " Listen to
what I have to tell you. Bruce Folger knows where
that secret agreement is."
For once in his life Dave got a response of suffi-
cient emphasis to satisfy him. His brother whirled,
his whole expression undergoing an immediate and
startling change. If there was one emotion that
Dave had never seen on Simon's face it was fear, —
and he did n't know for certain that he saw it now.
But there was alarm — unmistakable — and sur-
prise too.
144 The Strength of the Pines
" What do you mean? " he demanded.
Dave exulted inwardly. His brother's response
had almost made up for the evil news that he
brought. For Dave's fortunes, as well as Simon's,
depended on the vast fertile tract being kept in the
clan's possession. His eyes narrowed ever so
slightly. For the first time in his life, as far as
Dave could remember, Simon had encountered a
situation that he had not immediately mastered.
Perhaps it was the beginning of Simon's downfall,
which meant — by no great stretch of the imagina-
tion — the advancement of Dave. But in another
second of clear thinking Dave knew that in his
brother's strength lay his own; if this mighty force
at the head of the clan was weakening, no hope re-
mained for any of them. His own face grew anx-
ious.
" Out with it," Simon stormed. His tone was
really urgent now, not insolent as usual. " Good
Lord, man, don't you know that if Bruce gets that
down to the settlements before the thirtieth of next
month we 're lost — and nothing in this world can
save us? We can't drive him off, like we drove the
Rosses. There 's too much law down in the valleys.
If he 's got that paper, there 's only one thing to do.
Help me saddle a horse."
1 Wait a minute. I did n't say he had it., I only
said he knew where it was. He 's still an hour or
two walk from here, toward Little River, and if we
have to wait for him on the trail, we 've got plenty of
time. And of course I ain't quite sure he does know
where it is."
The Blood Atonement 145
Simon smiled mirthlessly. " The news is begin-
ning to sound like the rest of yours."
" Old Hudson is dead," Dave went on. " And
don't look at me — I did n't do it. I wish I had,
though, first off. For once my judgment was
better than yours. The Killer got him."
" Yes. Go on."
" I was with him when it happened. My gun got
jammed so I could n't shoot."
"Where is it now?"
Dave scrambled in vain for a story to explain the
loss of his weapon to Bruce, and the one that came
out at last did n't do him particular credit. "I — I
threw the damn thing away. Wish I had n't now,
but it made me so mad by jamming — it was a fool
trick. Maybe I can go back after it and find it."
Simon smiled again. ' Very good so far," he
commented.
Dave flushed. " Bruce was there too — fact is,
creased the bear — and the last minute before he
died Hudson told him where the agreement was
hidden. I could n't hear all he said — I was too
far away — but I heard enough to think that he told
Bruce the hiding place. It was natural Hudson
would know it, and we were fools for not asking him
about it long ago."
" And why did n't you get that information away
from Bruce with your gun? "
" Did n't I tell you the thing was jammed? If
it had n't of been for that, I 'd done something more
than find out where it is. I 'd stopped this non-
sense once and for all, and let a hole through that
146 The Strength of the Pines
tenderfoot big enough to see through. Then
Miere 'd never be any more trouble. It 's the thing
to do now."
Simon looked at his brother's face with some won-
der. More crafty and cunning, Dave was like the
coyote in that he did n't yield so quickly to fury as
that gray wolf, his brother. But when it did come,
it seared him. It had come now. Simon could n't
mistake the fact ; he saw it plain in the glowing eyes,
the clenched hands, the drawn lips. Dave was re-
membering the pain of the blow Bruce had given
him, and the smart of the words that had preceded
it.
" You and he must have had a little session down
there by the creek," Simon suggested slowly, " when
your gun was jammed. Of course, he took the gun.
What 's the use of trying to lie to me? "
" He did. What could I do? "
" And now you want him potted — from am-
bush."
" What 's the use of waiting? Who 'd know? "
The two men stood face to face in the quiet and
deepening dusk of the barn ; and there was growing
determination on each face. " Every day our
chance is less and less," Dave went on. " We Ve
been thinking we 're safe, but if he knows where that
agreement is, we 're not safe at all. How would
you like to get booted off these three thousand acres
now, just after we Ve all got attached to them? To
start making our living as day laborers — and
maybe face a hangin' for some things of long ago?
With this land behind him, he 'd be in a position to
The Blood Atonement 147
pay old debts, I 'm telling you. We 're not secure,
and you know it. The law does n't forget, and it
does n't forgive. We 've been fooling away our
time ever since we knew he was coming. We should
have met him on the trail and let the buzzards talk to
him."
" Yes," Simon echoed in a strange half -whisper.
" Let the buzzards talk to him."
Dave took fresh heart at the sound of that voice.
" No one would have ever knowed it," he went on.
" No one would ever know it now. They 'd find his
bones, some time maybe, but there 'd be no one to
point to. They 'd never get any thing against us.
Everybody except the mountain people have for-
gotten about this affair. Those in the mountains
are too scattered and few to take any part in it. I
tell you — it 's all the way, or no way at all. Tell
me to wait for him on the trail."
' Wait. Wait a minute. How long before he
will come? "
" Any time now. And don't postpone this mat-
ter any more. We 're men, not babies. He 's not
a fool or not a coward, either. He 's got his old
man's blood in him — not his mother's to run away.
As long as he ain't croaked, all we 've done so far is
apt to come to nothing. And there 's one thing
more. He 's going to take the blood-feud up
again."
" Lots of good it would do him. One against a
dozen."
" But he 's a shot — I saw that plain enough —
and how 'd you like to have him shoot through your
148 The Strength of the Pines
windows some time? Old Elmira and Linda have
set him on, and he 's hot for it."
:t I wish you 'd got that old heifer when you got
her son," Simon said. He still spoke calmly; but
it was plain enough that Dave's words were having
the desired effect. Dave could discern this fact by
certain lights and expressions about the pupils of
his brother's eyes, signs learned and remembered
long ago. " So he 's taken up the blood-feud, has
he? I thought I gave his father some lessons in that
a long time since. Well, I suppose we must let him
have his way! "
" And remember too," Dave urged, " what you
told him when you met him in the store. You said
you would n't warn him twice."
" I remember." The two men were silent, but
Dave stood no longer motionless. The motions that
he made, however, were not discernible in the grow-
ing gloom of the barn. He was shivering all over
with malice and fury.
' Then you 've given the word? " he asked.
" I 've given the word, but I '11 do it my own way.
Listen, Dave." Simon stood, head bent, deep in
thought. " Could you arrange to have Linda and
the old hag out of the house when Bruce gets back? "
"Yes — "
" We 've got to work this thing right. We can't
operate in the open like we used to. This man has
taken up the blood- feud — but the thing to do — is
to let him come to us."
" But he won't do it. He '11 go to the courts
first."
The Blood Atonement 149
Simon's face grew stern. " I don't want any
more interruptions, Dave. I mean we will want to
give the impression that he attacked us first — on his
own free will. What if he comes into our house —
a man unknown in these parts — and something
happens to him there — in the dead of night? It
would n't look so bad then, would it? Besides — if
we got him here — before the clan, we might be able
to find out where that document is. At least
we '11 have him here where everything will be in our
favor. First, how can you tell when he 's going to
come? "
" He ought to be here very soon. The moon 's
bright and I can get up on the ridge and see his
shadow through your field glasses when he crosses
the big south pasture. That will give me a full
half -hour before he comes."
" It 's enough. I 'm ready to give you your or-
ders now. They are — just to use your head, and
on some pretext get those two women out of the
house so that Bruce can't find them when he returns.
Don't let them come back for an hour, if you can
help it. If it works — all right. If it doesn't,
we '11 use more direct measures. I '11 tend to the
rest."
He strode to the wall and took down a saddle
from the hook. Quickly he threw it over the back
of one of the cow ponies, the animal that he had
punished. He put the bridle in Dave's hand.
" Stop at the house for the glasses, then ride to
the ridge at once," he ordered. " Then keep
watch."
150 The Strength of the Pines
Without words Dave led the horse through the
door and swung on to its back. In an instant the
wild folk, in the fringe of forest beyond, paused in
their night occupations to listen to the sound of
hoof beats on the turf. Then Simon slowly saddled
Ms own horse.
XIX
THE day was quite dead when Dave Turner
reached his post on top of the ridge. The gray of
twilight had passed, the forest was lost in darkness,
the stars were all out. The only vestige of daylight
that remained was a pale, red glow over the West-
ern mountains, — and this was more like red flowers
that had been placed on its grave in remembrance.
Fortunately, the moon rose early. Otherwise
Dave's watch would have been in vain. The soft
light wrought strange miracles in the forest: bath-
ing the tree tops in silver, laying wonderful cobweb
tapestries between the trunks, upsetting the whole
perspective as to distance and contour. Dave
did n't have long to wait. At the end fcf a half -hour
he saw, through the field glasses, the wavering of a
strange black shadow on the distant meadow. Only
the vivid quality of the full moon enabled him to see
it at all. ^
He tried to get a better focus. It might be just
the shadow of deer, come to browse on the parched
grass. Dave felt a little tremor of excitement at
the thought that if it were not Bruce, it was more
likely the last of the grizzlies, the Killer. The pre-
vious night the gray forest king had made an ex-
cursion into Simon's pastures and had killed a year-
ling calf ; in all probability he would return to-night
to finish his feast. In fact, this night would in all
152 The Strength of the Pines
probability see the end of the Killer. Some one of
the Turners would wait for him, with a loaded rifle,
in a safe ambush.
But it was n't the Killer, after all. It was before
his time ; besides, the shadow was too slender to be
that of the huge bear. Dave Turner watched a mo-
ment longer, so that there could be no possibility of
a mistake. Bruce was returning; he was little more
than a half -hour's walk from Linda's home.
Turner swung on his horse, then lashed the ani-
mal into a gallop. Less than five minutes later he
drew up to a halt beneath the Sentinel Pine, almost
a mile distant. For the first time, Dave began to
move cautiously.
It would complicate matters if the two women
had already gone to bed. The hour was early —
not yet nine — but the fall of darkness is often the
going-to-bed time of the mountain people. It is
warmer there and safer; and the expense of candles
is lessened. Incidentally, it is the natural course
for the human breed, — to bed at nightfall and up
at dawn; and only distortion of nature can change
the habit. It is doubtful if even the earliest men
— those curious, long-armed, stiff -thumbed, heavy-
jowled forefathers far remote — were ever night
hunters. Like the hawks and most of the other
birds of prey they were content to leave the game
trails to the beasts at night. As life in the moun-
tains gets down to a primitive basis, most of the hill
people soon fall into this natural course. But to-
night Linda and old Elmira were sitting up, waiting
for Bruce's return.
The Blood Atonement 153
A candle flame flickered at the window. Dave
went up to the door and knocked.
" Who 's there? " Elmira called. It was a habit
learned in the dreadful days of twenty years ago,
not to open a door without at least some knowledge
of who stood without. A lighted doorway sets off
a target almost as well as a field of white sets off a
black bull's-eye.
Dave knew that truth was the proper course.
" Dave Turner," he replied.
A long second of heavy, strange silence ensued.
Then the woman spoke again. There was a new
note in her voice, a curious hoarseness, but at the
same time a sense of exultation and excitement.
But Dave did n't notice it. Perhaps the oaken door
that the voice came through stripped away all the
overtones; possibly his own perceptions were too
blunt to receive it. He might, however, have been
interested in the singular look of wonder that flashed
over Linda's face as she stared at her aged aunt.
Linda was not thinking of Dave. She had forgot-
ten that he stood outside. His visit was the last
thing that either of them expected — except, per-
haps, on some such deadly business as the clan had
come years before — yet she found no space in her
thought for him. Her whole attention was seized
and held by the unfamiliar note in her aunt's voice,
and a strange drawing of the woman's features that
the closed door prevented Dave from seeing. It
was a look almost of rapture, hardly to be expected
in the presence of an enemy. The dim eyes seemed
to glow in the shadows. It was the look of one who
154 The Strength of the Pines
had wandered steep and unknown trails for un-
counted years and sees the distant lights of his
home at last.
She got up from her chair and moved over to the
little pack she had carried on her back when she had
walked up from her cabin. Linda still gazed at
her in growing wonder. The long years seemed to
have fallen away from her; she slipped across the
uncarpeted floor with the agility and silence of a
tiger. She always had given the impression of la-
tent power, but never so much as now. She took
some little object from the bag and slipped it next
to her withered and scrawny breast.
" What do you want? " she called out into the
gloom.
Dave had been getting a little restless in the si-
lence; but the voice reassured him. " I '11 tell you
when you open the door. It 's something about
Bruce."
Linda remembered him then. She leaped to the
door and flung it wide. She saw the stars without,
the dark fringe of pines against the sky line be-
hind. She felt the wind and the cool breath of the
darkness. But most of all she saw the cunning,
sharp-featured face of Dave Turner, with the
candlelight upon him. The yellow beams were in
his eyes too. They seemed full of guttering lights.
The few times that Linda had talked to Dave she
had always felt uneasy beneath his speculative gaze.
The same sensation swept over her now. She knew
perfectly what she would have had to expect, long
since, from this man, were it not that he had lived
The Blood Atonement 155
in fear of his brother Simon. The mighty leader of
the clan had set a barrier around her as far as per-
sonal attentions went, — and his reasons were ob-
vious. The mountain girls do not usually attain
her perfection of form and face ; his desire for her
was as jealous as it was intense and real. This
dark-hearted man of great and terrible emotions
did not only know how to hate. In his own savage
way he fould love too. Linda hated and feared
him, but the emotion was wholly different from the
dread and abhorrence with which she regarded
Dave. " What about Bruce? " she demanded.
Dave leered. " Do you want to see him? He 's
lying — up here on the hill."
The tone was knowing, edged with cruelty; and
it had the desired effect. The color swept from the
girl's face. In a single fraction of an instant it
showed stark white in the candlelight.
There was an instant's sensation of terrible cold.
But her voice was hard and lifeless when she spoke.
"You mean you've killed him?" she asked
simply.
" We ain't killed him. We Ve just been teach-
ing him a lesson," Dave explained. " Simon
warned him not to come up — and we 've had to
talk to him a little — with fists and heels."
Linda cried out then, one agonized syllable.
She knew what fists and heels could do in the fights
between the mountain men. They are as much
weapons of torture as the claws and fangs of the
Killer. She had an instant's dread picture of this
strong man of hers lying maimed and broken, a bat-
156 The Strength of the Pines
tered, whimpering, ineffective thing in the moon-
light of some distant hillside. The vision brought
knowledge to her. Even more clearly than in the
second of their kiss, before he had gone to see Hud-
son, she realized what an immutable part of her he
was. She gazed with growing horror at Dave's
leering face. ' Where is he? " she asked. She re-
membered, with singular steadfastness, the pistol
she had concealed in her own room.
"I '11 show you. If you want to get him in
you 'd better bring the old hag with you. It '11 take
two of you to carry him."
" I '11 come," the old woman said from across the
shadowed room. She spoke with a curious breath-
lessness. " I '11 go at once."
TJie door closed behind the three of them, and
they went out into the moonlit forest. Dave
walked first. There was an unlooked-for eagerness
in his motions, but Linda thought that she under-
stood it. It was wholly characteristic of him that
he should find a degenerate rapture in showing these
two women the terrible handiwork of the Turners.
He rejoiced in just this sort of cruelty. She had
no suspicion that this excursion was only a pretext
to get the two women away from the house, and that
his eagerness arose from deeper causes. It was
true that Dave exulted in the work, and strangely
the fact that it was part of the plot against Bruce
had been almost forgotten in the face of a greater
emotion. He was alone in the darkness with Linda
- except of course for a helpless old woman — and
the command of Simon in regard to his attitude to-
The Blood Atonement 157
ward her seemed suddenly dim and far away. He
led them over a hill, into the deeper forest.
He walked swiftly, eagerly ; the two women could
hardly keep pace with him. He left the dim trail
and skirted about the thickets. No cry for help
could carry from this lonely place. No watchman
on a hill could see what transpired in the heavy
coverts.
So intent was he that he quite failed to observe
a singular little signal between old Elmira and
Linda. The woman half turned about, giving the
girl an instant's glimpse of something that she trans-
ferred from her breast to her sleeve. It was slender
and of steel, and it caught the moonlight on its shin-
ing surface.
The girl's eyes glittered when she beheld it. She
nodded, scarcely perceptibly, and the strange file
plunged deeper into the shadows.
Fifteen minutes later Dave drew up to a halt in
a little patch of moonlight, surrounded by a wall of
low trees and brush.
" There 's more than one way to make a date for
a walk with a pretty girl," he said.
The girl stared coldly into his eyes. " What do
you mean? " she asked.
The man laughed harshly. " I mean that Bruce
ain't got back yet — he 's still on the other side of
Little River, for all I know — "
" Then why did you bring us here? "
."Just to be sociable," Dave returned. "I'll
tell you, Linda. I wanted to talk to you. I ain't
been in favor of a lot of things Simon's been doing
158 The Strength of the Pines
• — to you and your people. I thought maybe you
and I would like to be — friends."
No one could mistake the emotion behind the
strained tone, the peculiar languor in the furtive
eyes. The girl drew back, shuddering. " I 'm go-
ing back," she told him.
' Wait. I '11 take you back soon. Let 's have
a kiss and make friends. The old lady won't
look — "
He laughed again, a hoarse sound that rang far
through the silences. He moved toward her, hands
reaching. She backed away. Then she half-
tripped over an outstretched root.
The next instant she was in his arms, struggling
against their steel. She didn't waste words in
pleading. A sob caught at her throat, and she
fought with all her strength against the drawn,
nearing face. She had forgotten Elmira; in this
dreadful moment of terror and danger the old
woman's broken strength seemed too little to be of
aid. And Dave thought her as helpless to op-
pose him as the tall pines that watched from above
them.
His wild laughter obscured the single sound that
she made, a strange cry that seemed lacking in all
human quality. Rather it was such a sound as a
puma utters as it leaps upon its prey. It was the
articulation of a whole life of hatred that had come
to a crisis at last, — of deadly and terrible triumph
after a whole decade of waiting. If Dave had dis-
cerned that cry in time he would have hurled Linda
from his arms to leap into a position of defense.
The Blood Atonement 159
The desire for women in men goes down to the roots
of the world, but self-preservation is a deeper in-
stinct still.
But he did n't hear it in time. Elmira had not
struck with her knife. The distance was too far
for that. But she swung her cane with all her force.
The blow caught the man at the temple, his arms
fell away from the girl's body, he staggered gro-
tesquely in the carpet of pine needles. Then he fell
face downward.
" His belt, quick! " the woman cried. No longer
was her voice that of decrepit age. The girl strug-
gled with herself, wrenched back her self-control,
and leaped to obey her aunt. They snatched the
man's belt from about his waist, and the women
locked it swiftly about his ankles. With strong,
hard hands they drew his wrists back of him and
tied them tight with the long bandana handker-
chief he wore about his neck. They worked almost
in silence, with incredible rapidity and deftness.
The man was waking now, stirring in his uncon-
sciousness, and swiftly the old woman cut the buck-
skin thongs from his tall logging boots. These also
she twisted about the wrists, knotting them again
and again, and pulling them so tight they were al-
most buried in the lean flesh. Then they turned
him face upward to the moon.
The two women stood an instant, breathing hard.
* What now? " Linda asked. And a shiver of
awe went over her at the sight of the woman's face.
" Nothing more, Linda," she answered, in a dis-
tant voice. " Leave Dave Turner to me."
160 The Strength of the Pines
It was a strange picture. Womanhood — the
softness and tenderness which men have learned to
associate with the name — seemed fallen away from
Linda and Elmira. They were only avengers, —
like the she-bear that fights for her cubs or the she-
wolf that guards the lair. There was no more
mercy in them than in the females of the lower
species. The moon flooded the place with silver,
the pines were dark and impassive as ever above
them.
Dave wakened. They saw him stir. They
watched him try to draw his arms from behind him.
It was just a faint, little-understanding pull at first.
Then he wrenched and tugged with all his strength,
flopping strangely in the dirt. The effort increased
until it was some way suggestive of an animal in the
death struggle, — a fur bearer dying in the trap.
Terror was upon him. It was in his wild eyes
and his moonlit face; it was in the desperation and
frenzy of his struggles. And the two women saw
it and smiled into each other's eyes.
Slowly his efforts ceased. He lay still in the
pine needles. He turned his head, first toward
Linda, then to the inscrutable, dark face of the old
woman. As understanding came to him, the cold
drops emerged upon his swarthy skin.
"Good God!" he asked. "What are you go-
ing to do? "
" I 'm going back," Linda answered. " You had
some other purpose in bringing me out here — or
you would n't have brought Elmira, too. I 'm go-
ing back to wait for Bruce."
The Blood Atonement 161
" And you and I will linger here," Elmira told
him. " We have many things to say to each other.
We have many things to do. About my Abner —
there are many things you '11 want to hear of him."
The last vestige of the man's spirit broke beneath
the words. Abner had been old Elmira's son, — a
youth who had laughed often, and the one hope of
the old woman's declining years. And he had fallen
before Dave's ambush in a half-forgotten fight of
long years before.
The man shivered in his bonds. Linda turned to
go. The silence of the wilderness deepened about
them. " Oh, Linda, Linda," the man called.
" Don't leave me. Don't leave me here with her! "
he pleaded. " Please — please don't leave me in
this devil's power. Make her let me go."
But Linda didn't seem to hear. The brush
crackled and rustled; and the two — this dark-
hearted man and the avenger — were left together.
XX
THE homeward journey over the ridges had
meant only pleasure to Bruce. Every hour of it
had brought a deeper and more intimate knowledge
of the wilderness. The days had been full of little,
nerve-tingling adventures, and the nights full of
peace. And beyond all these, there was the hope of
seeing Linda again at the end of the trail.
Thoughts of her hardly ever left him throughout
the long tramp. She had more than fulfilled every
expectation. It was true that he had found no one
of his own kin, as he had hoped ; but the fact opened
up new possibilities that would have been otherwise
forbidden.
It was strange how he remembered her kiss. He
had known other kisses in his days — being a purely
rational and healthy young man — but there had
been nothing of immortality about them. Their
warmth had died quickly, and they had been forgot-
ten. They were just delights of moonlight nights
and nothing more. But he would wake up from
his dreams at night to feel Linda's kiss still upon
his lips. To recall it brought a strange tenderness,
— a softening of all the hard outlines of his picture
of life. It changed his viewpoint; it brought him a
knowledge of a joy and a gentleness that could exist
even in this stern world of wilderness and pines.
The Blood Atonement 163
With her face lingering before his eyes, the ridges
themselves seemed less stern and forbidding; there
were softer messages in the wind's breath; the
drama of the wild that went on about him seemed
less remorseless and cruel.
He remembered the touch of her hands. They
had been so cool, so gentle. He remembered the
changing lights in her dark eyes. Life had opened
up new vistas to him. Instead of a stern battle-
ground, he began to realize that it had a softer,
gentler, kinder side, — a place where there could be
love as well as hatred, peace as well as battle, cheery
homes and firesides and pleasant ways and laughter
instead of cold ways and lonely trails and empty
hearts and grim thoughts. Perhaps, if all went
well, tranquillity might come to him after all. Per-
haps he might even know the tranquil spirit of the
pines.
These were mating days. It was true that the
rutting season had not, in reality, commenced. The
wolf pack had not yet gathered, and would not un-
til after the heavy frosts. But the bucks had begun
to rub the velvet from their horns so that they would
be hard and sharp for the fights to come. And
these would be savage battles — with death at the
end of many of them. But perhaps the joys that
would follow — the roving, mating days with the
does — would more than make up for their pain.
The trim females were seen less often with their
fawns ; and they seemed strangely restless and trem-
ulous, perhaps wondering what fortune the fall
would have for them in the way of a mate.
164 The Strength of the Pines
The thought gave Bruce pleasure. He could
picture the deer herd in the fall, — the proud buck
in the lead, ready to fight all contenders, his harem
of does, and what fawns and young bucks he per-
mitted to follow him. They would make stealing
journeys down to the foothills to avoid the snow,
and all manner of pleasures would be theirs in the
gentler temperatures of the lowlands. They would
know crisp dawns and breathless nights, long run-
nings into the valleys, and to the does the realiza-
tion of motherhood when the spring broke.
But aside from his contemplations of Linda, the
long tramp had many delights for him. He re-
joiced in every manifestation of the wild life about
him, whether it was a bushy-tailed old gray squirrel,
watching him from a tree limb, a magpie trying its
best to insult him, or the fleeting glimpse of a deer
in the coverts. Once he saw the black form of
Ashur the bear, mumbling and grunting as he
searched under rotten logs for grubs. But he
did n't see the Killer again. He did n't particularly
care to do so.
He kept his rifle ready during the day for game,
but he shot only what he needed. He did not at-
tempt to kill the deer. He knew that he would have
no opportunity to care for the meat. But he did,
occasionally, shoot the head off a cock-grouse at
close range, and no chef of Paris could offer a more
tempting dish than its flesh, rolled in flour and
served up, fried brown, in bacon grease. It was
mostly white meat, exceedingly tender, yet with the
zest of wild game. But he dined on bacon exclu-
The Blood Atonement 165
sively one night because, after many misses at
grouse, he declined to take the life of a gray squir-
rel that had perched in an oak tree above the trail.
Someway, it seemed to be getting too much pleasure
out of life for him to blast it with a rifle shot. A
squirrel has only a few ounces of flesh, and the woods
without them would be dull and inane indeed. Be-
sides, they were bright-eyed, companionable people
— dwellers of the wilderness even as Bruce — and
their personality had already endeared itself to
him.
Once he startled a fawn almost out of its wits
when he came upon it suddenly in a bend in the trail,
and he shouted with delight as it bounded awk-
wardly away. Once a porcupine rattled its quills
at him and tried to seem very ferocious. But it was
all the most palpable of bluffs, for Urson, while
particularly adept at defense, has no powers of of-
fense whatever. He cannot move quickly. He
can't shoot his spines, as the story-books say. He
can only sit on the ground and erect them into a
sort of suit of armor to repel attack. But Bruce
knew enough not to attempt to stroke the creature.
If he had done so, he would have spent the re-
mainder of the season pulling out spines from the
soft flesh of his hand.
Urson was a patient, stupid, guileless creature,
and he and Bruce had a strange communion to-
gether as they stood face to face on the trail.
" You Ve got the right idea," Bruce told him. " To
erect a wall around you and let 'em yell outside
without giving them a thought. To stand firm, not
1 66 The Strength of the Pines
to take part. You 're a true son of the pines, Ur-
son. Now let me past."
But the idea was furthest from Urson's mind.
He sat firm on the trail, hunched into a spiny ball.
Instead of killing him with his rifle butt, as Dave
would have done, Bruce laughed good-naturedly
and went around him.
Both days of the journey home he wakened
sharply at dawn. The cool, morning hours were
the best for travel. He would follow down the nar-
row, brown trail, — now through a heavy covert
that rustled as the wild creatures sped from his path,
now up a long ridge, now down into a still, dark
glen, and sometimes into a strange, bleak place
where the forest fire had swept. Every foot was a
delight to him.
He was of naturally strong physique, and al-
though the days fatigued him unmercifully, he al-
ways wakened refreshed in the dawn. At noon he
would stop to lunch, eating a few pieces of jerkey
and frying a single flapjack in his skillet. He
learned how to eff ect it quickly, first letting his fire
burn down to coals. And usually, during the noon
rest, he would practice with his rifle.
He knew that if he were to fight the Turners,
skill with a rifle was an absolute necessity ; such skill
as would have felled the grizzly with one shot in-
stead of administering merely a flesh wound, accu-
racy to take off the head of a grouse at fifty yards ;
and at the same time, an ability to swing and aim
the weapon in the shortest possible space of time.
The only thing that retarded him was the realiza-
The Blood Atonement 167
tion that he must not waste too many cartridges.
Elrnira had brought him only a small supply.
He would walk all afternoon — going somewhat
easier and resting more often than in the morning;
and these were the times that he appreciated a frag-
ment of jerked venison. He would halt just before
nightfall and make his camp.
The first work was usually to strip a young fir
tree of its young, slender branches. These, accord-
ing to Linda's instructions, were laid on the ground,
their stalks overlapping, and in a remarkably few
minutes he could construct a bed as comfortable as
a hair mattress. It was true that the work always
came at an hour when most of all he wanted food
and rest, but he knew that a restless night means
quick fatigue the next day. Then he would clean
his game and build his fire and cook his evening meal.
Simple food had never tasted so good to him before.
Bacon grease was his only flavor, but it had a zest
that all the sauces and dressings of France could not
approach. The jerkey was crisp and nutty; his
flapjacks went directly to the spot where he desired
them to go.
But the best hour of all was after his meal, as he
sat in the growing shadows with his pipe. It was
always an hour of calm. The little, breathless
noises of the wild people in the thickets ; the gophers,
to whose half blind eyes — used to the darkness of
their underground passages — the firelight was al-
most blinding; the chipmunks, and even the larger
creatures came clearest to him then and told him
more. But they did n't frighten him. Ordinarily,
1 68 The Strength of the Pines
he knew, the forest creatures of the Southern Ore-
gon mountains mean and do no harm to lonely
campers. Nevertheless, he kept fairly accurate
track of his rifle. He had enough memory of the
charge of the Killer to wish to do that. And he
thought with some pleasure that he had a reserve ar-
senal, — Dave's thirty- thirty with five shells in its
magazine.
At this hour he felt the spirit of the pines as
never before. He knew their great, brooding sor-
row, their infinite wisdom, their inexpressible aloof-
ness with which they kept watch over the wilder-
ness. The smoke would drift about him in sooth-
ing clouds ; the glow of the coals was red and warm
over him. He could think then. Life revealed
some of its lesser mysteries to him. And he began
to glimpse the distant gleam of even greater truths,
and sometimes it seemed to him that he could almost
catch and hold them. Always it was some message
that the pines were trying to tell him, — partly in
words they made when their limbs rubbed together,
partly in the nature of a great allegory of which
their dark, impassive forms were the symbols. If
he could only see clearly ! But it seemed to him that
passion blinded his eyes.
' They talk only to the stars," Linda had said
once of the pines. But he had no illusions about
this talk of theirs. It was greater, more fraught
with wisdom, than anything men might say together
below them. He could imagine them telling high
secrets that he himself could discern but dimly and
could hardly understand. More and more he real-
The Blood Atonement 169
ized that the pines, like the stars, were living sym-
bols of great powers who lived above the world,
powers that would speak to men if they would but
listen long and patiently enough, and in whose creed
lay happiness.
When the pipe was out he would go to his fra-
grant bed. The night hours would pass in a breath.
And he would rise and go on in the crisp dawns.
The last afternoon he traveled hard. He wanted
to reach Linda's house before nightfall. But the
trail was too long for that. The twilight fell, to
find him still a weary two miles distant. And the
way was quite dark when he plunged into the south
pasture of the Ross estates.
Half an hour later he was beneath the Sentinel
Pine. He wondered why Linda was not waiting
beneath it; in his fancy, he thought of it as being
the ordained place for her. But perhaps she had
merely failed to hear his footsteps. He called into
the open door.
" Linda," he said. " I 've come back."
No answer reached him. The words rang
through the silent rooms and echoed back to him.
He walked over the threshold.
A chair in the front room was turned over. His
heart leaped at the sight of it. " Linda," he called
in alarm, " where are you? It 's Bruce."
He stood an instant listening, a great fear creep-
ing over him. He called once more, first to Linda
and then to the old woman. Then he leaped
through the doorway.
The kitchen was similarly deserted. From there
170 The Strength of the Pines
f
he went to Linda's room. Her coat and hat lay on
the bed, but there was no Linda to stretch her arms
to him. He started to go out the way he had come,
but went instead to his own room. A sheet of note-
paper lay on the bed.
It had been scrawled hurriedly; but although he
had never received a written word from Linda he
did not doubt but that it was her hand :
The Turners are coming — I caught a glimpse of them
on the ridge. There is no use of my trying to resist, so
I '11 wait for them in the front room and maybe they won't
find this note. They will take me to Simon's house, and
I know from its structure that they will lock me in an in-
terior room in the East wing. Use the window on that
side nearest the North corner. My one hope is that you
will come at once to save me.
Bruce's eyes leaped over the page; then thrust
it into his pocket. He slipped through the rear
door of the house, into the shadows.
XXI
As Bruce hurried up the hill toward the Ross
estates, he made a swift calculation of the rifle shells
in his pocket. The gun held six. He had perhaps
fifteen others in his pockets, and he had n't stopped
to replenish them from the supply Elmira had
brought. He hadn't brought Dave's rifle with
him, but had left it with the remainder of his pack.
He knew that the lighter he traveled the greater
would be his chance of success.
The note had explained the situation perfectly.
Obviously the girl had written when the clan was
closing about the house, and finding her in the front
room, there had been no occasion to search the other
rooms and thus discover it. The girl had kept her
head even in that moment of crisis. A wave of ad-
miration for her passed over him.
And the little action had set an example for him.
He knew that only rigid self-control and cool-
headed strategy could achieve the thing he had set
out to do. There must be no false motions, no mis-
steps. He must put out of his mind all thought of
what dreadful fate might have already come upon
the girl ; such fancies would cost him his grip upon
his own faculties and lose him the power of clear
thinking. His impulse was to storm the door, to
pour his lead through the lighted windows ; but such
things could never take Linda out of Simon's hands.
172 The Strength of the Pines
Only stealth and caution, not blind courage and
frenzy, could serve her now. Such blind killing as
his heart prompted had to wait for another time.
Nevertheless, the stock of his rifle felt good in his
hands. Perhaps there would be a running fight
after he got the girl out of the house, and then his
cartridges would be needed. There might even be
a moment of close work with what guards the Turn-
ers had set over her. But the heavy stock, used like
a club, would be most use to him then.
He knew only the general direction of the Ross
house where Simon lived. Linda had told him it
rested upon the crest of a small hill, beyond a ridge
of timber. The moonlight showed him a well-beaten
trail, and he strode swiftly along it. For once, he
gave no heed to the stirring forest life about him.
When a dead log had fallen across his path, he
swung over it and hastened on.
He had a vague sense of familiarity with this
winding trail. Perhaps he had toddled down it as
a baby, perhaps his mother had carried him along it
on a neighborly visit to the Rosses. He went over
the hill and pushed his way to the edge of the tim-
ber. All at once the moon showed him the house.
He could n't mistake it, even at this distance.
And to Bruce it had a singular effect of unreality.
The mountain men did not ordinarily build homes
of such dimensions. They were usually merely log
cabins of two or three lower rooms and a garret to
be reached with a ladder; or else, on the rough
mountain highways, crude dwellings of unpainted
frame. The ancestral home of the Rosses, how-
The Blood Atonement 173
ever, had fully a dozen rooms, and it loomed to an
incredible size in the mystery of the moonlight. He
saw quaint gabled roofs and far-spreading wings.
And it seemed more like a house of enchantment, a
structure raised by the rubbing of a magic lamp,
than the work of carpenters and masons.
Probably its wild surroundings had a great deal
to do with this effect. There were no roads lead-
ing to Trail's End. Material could not be carried
over its winding trails except on pack animals. He
had a realization of tremendous difficulties that had
been conquered by tireless effort, of long months of
unending toil, of exhaustless patience, and at the
end, — a dream come true. All of its lumber had
to be hewed from the forests about. Its stone had
been quarried from the rock cliffs and hauled with
infinite labor over the steep trails.
He understood now why the Turners had coveted
it. It seemed the acme of luxury to them.
And more clearly than ever he understood why the
Rosses had died, sooner than relinquish it, and why
its usurpation by the Turners had left such a debt
of hatred to Linda. It was such a house as men
dream about, a place to bequeath to their children
and to perpetuate their names. Built like a rock, it
would stand through the decades, to pass from one
generation to another, — an enduring monument to
the strong thews of the men who had builded it. All
men ,know that the love of home is one of the few
great impulses that has made toward civilization,
but by the same token it has been the cause of many
wars. It was never an instinct of a nomadic people,
174 The Strength of the Pines
and possibly in these latter days — days of apart-
ments and flats and hotels — its hold is less. Per-
haps the day is coming when this love will die in the
land, but with it will die the strength to repel
the heathen from our walls, and the land will not
be worth living in, anyway. But it was not dead
to the mountain people. No really primitive emo-
tion ever is.
Perhaps, after all, it is a question of the age-old
longing for immortality, and therefore it must have
its seat in a place higher than this world of death.
Men know that when they walk no longer under the
suA and the moon it is good to have certain monu-
ments to keep their name alive, whether it be blocks
of granite at the grave-head, or sons living in an an-
cestral home. The Rosses had known this instinct
very well. As all men who are strong-thewed and
of real natural virtue, they had known pride of race
and name, and it had been a task worth while to
build this stately house on their far-lying acres.
They had given their fiber to it freely; no man who
beheld the structure could doubt that fact. They
had simply consecrated their lives to it; their one
Work by which they could show to all who came
after that by their own hands they had earned their
right to live.
They had been workers, these men; and there is
no higher degree. But their achievements had been
stolen from their hands. Bruce felt the real signifi-
cance of his undertaking as never before.
He saw the broad lands lying under the moon.
There were hundreds of acres in alfalfa and clover
The Blood Atonement 175
to furnish hay for the winter feeding. There were
wide, green pastures, ensilvered by the moon; and
fields of corn laid out in even rows. The old appeal
of the soil, an instinct that no person of Anglo-
Saxon descent can ever completely escape, swept
through him. They were worth fighting for, these
fertile acres. The wind brought up the sweet
breath of ripening hay.
Not for nothing have a hundred generations of
Anglo-Saxon people been tillers of the soil. They
had left a love of it to Bruce. In a single flash of
thought, even as he hastened toward the house where
he supposed Linda was held prisoner, the ancient
joy returned to him. He knew what it would be
like to feel the earth's pulse through the handles of
a plow, to behold the first start of green things in
the spring and the golden ripening in fall; to watch
the flocks through the breathless nights and the
herds feeding on the distant hills.
Bruce looked over the ground. He knew enough
not to continue the trail farther. The space in
front was bathed in moonlight, and he would make
the best kind of target to any rifleman watching
from the windows of the house. He turned through
the coverts, seeking the shadow of the forests at one
side.
By going in a quartering direction he was able to
approach within two hundred yards of the house
without emerging into the moonlight. At that
point the real difficulty of the stalk began. He
hovered in the shadows, then slipped one hundred
feet farther to the trunk of a great oak tree.
176 The Strength of the Pines
He could see the house much more plainly now.
True, it had suffered neglect in the past twenty
years ; it needed painting and many of its windows
were broken, but it was a magnificent old mansion
even yet. It stood lost in its dreams in the moon-
light ; and if, as old stories say, houses have memo-
ries, this old structure was remembering certain
tragic dramas that had waged within and about it
in a long-ago day. Bruce rejoiced to see that there
were no lights in the east wing of the house; the
window that Linda had indicated in the note was
just a black square on the moonlit wall.
There was a neglected garden close to this wing
of the house. Bruce could make out rose bushes,
grown to brambles, tall, rank weeds, and heavy
clumps of vines. If he could reach this spot in
safety he could approach within a few feet of the
house and still remain in cover. He went flat ; then
slowly crawled toward it.
Once a light sprang up in a window near the
front, and he pressed close to the earth. But in a
moment it went away. He crept on. He didn't
know when a watchman in one of the dark windows
would discern his creeping figure. But he did know
perfectly just what manner of greeting he might
expect in this event. There would be a single little
spurt of fire in the darkness, so small that probably
his eyes would quite fail to catch it. If they did dis-
cern it, there would be no time for a message to be
recorded in his brain. It would mean a swift and
certain end of all messages. The Turners would
lose no time in emptying their rifles at him, and
The Blood Atonement 177
there wouldn't be the slightest doubt about their
hitting the mark. All the clan were expert shots
and the range was close.
The house was deeply silent. He felt a growing
sense of awe. In a moment more, he slipped into
the shadows of the neglected rose gardens.
He lay quiet an instant, resting. He did n't wish
to risk the success of his expedition by fatiguing
himself now. He wanted his full strength and
breath for any crisis that he should meet in the room
where Linda was confined.
Many times, he knew, skulking figures had been
Concealed in this garden. Probably the Turners,
in the days of the blood-feud, had often waited in its
shadows for a sight of some one of their enemies in
a lighted window. Old ghosts dwelt in it ; he could
see their shadows waver out of the corner of his
eyes. Or perhaps it was only the shadow of the
brambles, blown by the wind.
Once his heart leaped into his throat at a sharp
crack of brush beside him ; and he could scarcely re-
strain a muscular jerk that might have revealed his
position. But when he turned his head he could see
nothing but the coverts and the moon above them.
A garden snake, or perhaps a blind mole, had made
the sound.
Four minutes later he was within one dozen feet
of the designated window. There was a stretch of
moonlight between, but he passed it quickly. And
now he stood in bold relief against the moonlit
house-wall.
He was in perfectly plain sight of any one on the
178 The Strength of the Pines
hill behind. Possibly his distant form might have
been discerned from the window of one of the lesser
houses occupied by Simon's kin. But he was too
close to the wall to be visible from the windows of
Simon's house, except by a deliberate scrutiny.
And the window slipped up noiselessly in his
hands.
He was considerably surprised. He had ex-
pected this window to be locked. Some way, he
felt less hopeful of success. He recalled in his mind
the directions that Linda had left, wondering if he
had come to the wrong window. But there was no
chance of a mistake in this regard ; it was the north-
ernmost window in the east wing. However, she
had said that she would be confined in an interior
room, and possibly the Turners had seen no need
of barriers other than its locked door. Probably
they had not even anticipated that Bruce would at-
tempt a rescue.
He leaped lightly upward and slipped silently
into the room. Except for the moonlit square on
the floor it was quite in darkness. It seemed to
him that even in the night hours over a camp fire he
had never known such silence as this that pressed
about him now.
He stood a moment, hardly breathing. But he
decided it was not best to strike a match. There
were no enemies here, or they certainly would have
accosted him when he raised the window; and a
match might reveal his presence to some one in an
adjoining room. He rested his hand against the
wall, then moved slowly around the room. He
The Blood Atonement 179
knew that by this course he would soon encounter
the door that led into the interior rooms.
In a moment he found it. He stood waiting.
He turned the knob gently; then softly pulled.
But the door was locked.
There was no sound now but the loud beating of
his own heart. He could no longer hear the voices
of the wind outside the open window. He won-
dered whether, should he hurl all his magnificent
strength against the panels, he could break the
lock ; and if he did so, whether he could escape with
the girl before he was shot down. But his hand,
wandering over the lock, encountered the key.
It was easy, after all. He turned the key. The
door opened beneath his hand.
If there had been a single ray of light under the
door or through the keyhole, his course would have
been quite different. He would have opened the
door suddenly in that case, hoping to take by sur-
prise whosoever of the clan were guarding Linda.
To open a door slowly into a room full of enemies
is only to give them plenty of time to cock their
rifles. But in this case the room was in darkness,
and all that he need fear was making a sudden
sound. The opening slowly widened. Then he
slipped through and stood ten breathless seconds in
silence.
" Linda," he whispered. He waited a long time
for an answer. Then he stole farther into the room.
" Linda," he said again. " It 's Bruce. Are
you here? "
And in that unfathomable silence he heard a
i8o The Strength of the Pines
sound — a sound so dim and small that it only
reached the frontier of hearing. It was a strange,
whispering, eerie sound, and it filled the room like
the faintest, almost imperceptible gust of wind.
But there was no doubting its reality. And after
one more instant in which his heart stood still, he
knew what it was : the sound of suppressed breath-
ing. A living creature occupied this place of dark-
ness with him, and was either half -gagged by, a
handkerchief over the face or was trying to con-
ceal its presence by muffling its breathing.
" Linda," he said again.
There was a strange response to the calling of
that name. He heard no whispered answer. In-
stead, the door he had just passed through shut
softly behind him.
For a fleeting instant he hoped that the wind had
blown it shut. For it is always the way of youth
to hope, — as long as any hope is left. His heart
leaped and he whirled to face it. Then he heard
the unmistakable sound of a bolt being slid into
place.
Some little space of time followed in silence.
He struggled with growing horror, and time seemed
limitless. Then a strong man laughed grimly in
the darkness.
XXII
As Bruce waited, his eyes slowly became accus-
tomed to the darkness. He began to see the dim
outlines of his fellow occupants of the room, —
fully seven brawny men seated in chairs about the
walls. " Let 's hear you drop your rifle," one of
them said.
Bruce recognized the grim voice as Simon's, —
heard on one occasion before. He let his rifle fall
from his hands. He knew that only death would
be the answer to any resistance to these men. Then
Simon scratched a match, and without looking at
him, bent to touch it to the wick of the lamp.
The tiny flame sputtered and flickered, filling
the room with dancing shadows. Bruce looked
about him. It was the same long, white-walled
room that Dave and Simon had conversed in, after
Elmira had first dispatched her message by Barney
Wegan. Bruce knew that he faced the Turner
clan at last.
Simon sat beside the fireplace, the lamp at his el-
bow. As the wick caught, the light brightened
and steadied, and Bruce could see plainly. On
each side of him, in chairs about the walls, sat
Simon's brothers and his blood relations that shared
the estate with him. They were huge, gaunt men,
most of them dark-bearded and sallow-skinned, and
1 82 The Strength of the Pines
all of them regarded him with the same gaze of
speculative interest.
Bruce did not flinch before their gaze. He stood
erect as he could, instinctively defiant.
" Our guest is rather early," Simon began.
" Dave has n't come yet, and Dave is the principal
witness."
A bearded man across the room answered him.
" But I guess we ain't goin' to let the prisoner go
for lack of evidence."
The circle laughed then, — a harsh sound that
was not greatly different from the laughter of the
coyotes on the sagebrush hills. But they sobered
when they saw that Simon hadn't laughed. His
dark eyes were glowing.
" You, by no chance, met him on the way home,
did you? " he asked.
" I wish I had," Bruce replied. " But I did n't."
" I don't understand your eagerness. You
did n't seem overly eager to meet us."
Bruce smiled wanly. These wilderness men re-
garded him with fresh interest. Somehow, they
hadn't counted on his smiling. It was almost as
if he were of the wilderness breed himself, instead
of the son of cities. " I 'm here, am I not? " he
said. " It is n't as if you came to my house first."
He regarded the clansmen again. He had missed
Dave's crafty face in the circle.
" Yes, you 're here," Simon confirmed. " And
I 'm wondering if you remember what I told you
just as you left Martin's store that day — that I
gave no man two warnings."
The Blood Atonement 183
" I remember that," Bruce replied. " I saw no
reason for listening to you. I don't see any reason
now, and I would n't if it was n't for that row of
guns."
Simon studied his pale face. " Perhaps you '11
be sorry you did n't listen, before this night is over.
And there are many hours yet in it. Bruce — you
came up here to these mountains to open old
wounds."
" Simon, I came up here to right wrongs — and
you know it. If old wounds are opened, I can't
help it."
" And to-night," Simon went on as if he had not
been answered, " you have come unbidden into our
house. It would be all the evidence the courts
would need, Bruce — that you crept into our house
in the dead of night. If anything happened to you
here, no word could be raised against us. You were
a brave man, Bruce."
" So I can suppose you left the note? "
The circle laughed again, but Simon silenced
them with a gesture. ' You 're very keen," he
said.
* Then where is Linda? " Bruce's eyes hardened.
" I am more interested in her whereabouts than in
this talk with you."
' The last seen of her, she was going up a hill
with Dave. When Dave returns you can ask
him."
The bearded man opposite from Simon uttered a
short syllable of a laugh. " And it don't look like
he 's going to return," he said. The knowing look
184 The Strength of the Pines
on his face was deeply abhorrent to Bruce. Curi-
ously, Simon's face flushed, and he whirled in his
chair.
" Do you mean anything in particular, Old
Bill? " he demanded.
"It looks to me like maybe Dave 's forgot a lot
of things you told him, and he and Linda are
havin' a little sparkin' time together out in the
brush."
The idea seemed to please the clan. But Simon's
eyes glowed, and Bruce himself felt the beginnings
of a blind rage that might, unless he held hard upon
it, hurl him against their remorseless weapons. " I
don't want any more such talk out of you, Old
Bill," Simon reproved him, " and we 've talked
enough, anyway." His keen eyes studied Bruce's
flushed face. " One of you give our guest a chair
and fix him up in it with a thong. We don't want
him flying off the coop and getting shot until we 're
done talking to him."
One of the clansmen pushed a chair forward with
sudden force, striking Bruce in the knees and al-
most knocking him over. The circle leered, and he
sat down in it with as much ease as possible. Then
one of the men looped his arms to the arms of the
chair with thongs of buckskin. Another thong was
tied about his ankles. Then the clansmen went
back to their chairs.
" I really don't see the use of all these dramatics,"
Bruce said coldly. " And I don't particularly like
veiled threats. At present I seem to be in your
hands."
The Blood Atonement 185
" You don't seem to be," Simon answered with
reddening eyes. " You are."
" I have no intention of saying I 'm sorry I
did n't heed the threats you gave me before — and
as to those I 've heard to-night — they 're not going
to do you any good, either. It is true that you
found me in the house you occupy in the dead of
night — but it isn't your house to start with.
What a man seizes by murder is n't his."
" What a man holds with a hard fist and his
rifle — in these mountains — is his," Simon contra-
dicted him.
" Besides, you got me here with a trick," Bruce
went on without heeding him. "So don't pretend
that any wickedness you do to-night was justified
by my coming. You '11 have to answer for it just
the same."
Simon leaned forward in his chair. His dark
eyes glowed in the lamplight. " I Ve heard such
talk as that before," he said. " I expect your own
father talked like that a few times himself."
The words seemed to strike straight home to the
gathered Turners. The moment was breathless,
weighted with suspense. All of them seemed
straining in their chairs.
Bruce's head bowed, but the veins stood out be-
neath the short hair on his temples, and his lips
trembled when he answered. " That was a greater
wickedness than anything — anything you can do
to-night. And you '11 have to answer for it all the
more."
He spoke the last sentence with a calm assurance.
1 86 The Strength of the Pines
Though spoken softly, the words rang clear. But
the answer of the evil-hearted man before him was
only a laugh.
" And there 's one thing more I want to make
clear," Bruce went on in the strong voice of a man
who had conquered his terror. And it was not be-
cause he did not realize his danger. He was in the
hands of the Turners, and he knew that Simon had
spoken certain words that, if for no other reason
than his reputation with his followers, he would
liave to make good. Bruce knew that no moment
of his life was ever fraught with greater peril. But
the fact itself that there were no doors of escape
open to him, and he was face to face with his des-
tiny, steadied him all the more.
The boy that had been wakened in his bed at
3iome by the ring of the 'phone bell had wholly
vanished now. A man of the wild places had
come instead, stern and courageous and un-
flinching.
" Everything is tolerable clear to us already,"
rSimon said, " except your sentence."
"I want you to know that I refuse to be im-
pressed with this judicial attitude of you and your
blackguard followers," Bruce went on. " This
gathering of the group of you does n't make any
evil that you do any less wrong, or the payment
you '11 have to make any less sure. It lies wholly in
your power to kill me while I 'm sitting here, and
I have n't much hope but that you '11 do it. But let
me tell you this. A reign of bloodshed and crime
go on only so long. You Ve been kings up
The Blood Atonement 187
here, and you think the law can't reach you. But
it will — believe me? it will."
" And this was the man who was going to begin
the blood- feud — already hollering about the law,"
Simon said to his followers. He turned to Bruce.
" It 's plain that Dave is n't going to come. I '11
have to be the chief witness myself, after all. How-
ever, Dave told me all that I needed to know. The
first question I have to ask of you, Folger, is the
whereabouts of that agreement between your late
lamented father and the late lamented Matthew
Ross, according to what the trapper Hudson told
you a few days ago."
Bruce was strong enough to laugh in his bonds.
' Up to this time I have given you and your mur-
derous crowd credit for at least natural intelli-
gence," he replied, " but I see I was mistaken — or
you would n't expect an answer to that question."
" Do you mean you don't know its where-
abouts? "
" I won't give you the satisfaction of knowing
whether I know or not. I just refuse to answer."
" I trust the ropes are tight enough about your
wrists."
" Plenty tight, thank you. They are cutting the
flesh so it bleeds."
" How would you like them some tighter? "
u Pull them till they cut my arms off, and you
won't get a civil answer out of me. In fact — "
and the man's eyes blazed — " I 'm tired of talking
to this outlaw crowd. And the sooner you do what
you 're going to do, the better it will suit me."
1 88 The Strength of the Pines
" We '11 come to that shortly enough. Disre-
garding that for a moment — we understand that
you want to open up the blood-feud again. Is that
true? "
Bruce made no answer, only gazed without flinch-
ing into his questioner's face.
" That was what my brother Dave led me to un-
derstand," Simon went on, " so we Ve decided to
let you have your way. It 's open — it 's been open
since you came here. You disregarded the warning
I gave — and men don't disregard my warnings
twice. You threatened Dave with your rifle. This
is a different land than you 're used to, Bruce, and
we do things our own way. You Ve hunted for
trouble and now you Ve found it. Your father be-
fore you thought he could stand against us — w but
he 's been lying still a long time. The R6sses
thought so too. And it is part of our code never to
take back a threat — but always to make it good."
Bruce still sat with lowered head, seemingly not
listening. The clansmen gazed at him, and a new,
more deadly spirit was in the room. None of them.
smiled now; the whole circle of faces was dark itad
intent, their eyes glittered through narrowed lids,
their lips set. The air was charged with suspense.
The moment of crisis was near.
Sometimes the men glanced at their leader's face,
and what they saw there filled them with a grim and
terrible eagerness. Simon was beginning to run
true to form. His dark passions were slowly mas-
tering him. For a moment they all sat as if en-
tranced in a communion of cruelty, and to Bruce
The Blood Atonement 189
they seemed like a colony of spotted rattlesnakes
such as sometimes hold their communions of hatred
on the sun-blasted cliffs.
All at once Simon laughed, — a sharp, hoarse
sound that had, in its overtones, a note of madness.
Every man in the room started. They seemed to
have forgotten Bruce. They looked at their
leader with a curious expectancy. They seemed to
know that that wild laugh betokened but one thing
— the impact of some terrible sort of inspiration.
As they watched, they saw the idea take hold of
him. The huge face darkened. His eyes seemed
to smolder as he studied his huge hands. They
understood, these wilderness men. They had seen
thei leader in such sessions before. A strange and
grim idea had come to him; already he was feasting
on its possibilities. It seemed to heat his blood and
blur his vision.
1 We Ve decided to be merciful, after all," he
said slowly. But neither Bruce nor the clansmen
misunderstood him or were deceived. They only
knew that these words were simply part of a deadly
jeijjk that in a moment all would understand. " In-
stead of filling you full of thirty-thirty bullets, as
better men than you have been filled and what
we ought to do — we 're just going to let you lay
out all night — in the pasture — with your feet
tied and your hands behind your back."
No one relaxed. They listened, staring, for
what would follow.
" You may get a bit cold before morning," Simon
went on, " but you 're warmly dressed, and a little
i go The Strength of the Pines
frost won't hurt you. And I 've got the place all
picked out for you. And we 're even going to move
something that 's laying there so it will be more
pleasant."
Again he paused. Bruce looked up.
' The thing that 's lying there is a dead yearling
<calf, half ate up. It was killed last night by the
Killer — the old grizzly that maybe you Ve heard
of before. Some of the boys were going to wait
in trees to-night by the carcass and shoot the Killer
when he comes back after another meal — some-
thing that likely won't happen until about midnight
if he runs true to form. But it won't be necessary
now. We 're going to haul the carcass away —
down wind where he won't smell it. And we 're
going to leave you there in its place to explain to
him what became of it."
Bruce felt their glowing eyes upon him. Exul-
tation was creeping over the clan; once more their
leader had done himself proud. It was such sug-
gestions as this that kept them in awe of him.
And they thought they understood. They sup-
posed that the night would be of the utter depths
of terror to the tenderfoot from the cities, that the
bear would sniff and wander about him, and per-
chance the man's hair would be turned quite white
fcy morning. But being mountain men, they
thought that the actual danger of attack was not
great. They supposed that the inborn fear of men
that all animals possess would keep him at a dis-
tance. And, if by any unlikely chance the theft
of the beef-carcass should throw him into such a
The Blood Atonement 191
rage that he would charge Bruce, no harm in par-
ticular would be done. The man was a Folger, an
enemy of the clan, and after once the telltale ropes,
were removed, no one would ask questions about
the mutilated, broken thing that would be found
next morning in the pasture. The story would
carry down to the settlements merely as a fresh
atrocity of the Killer, the last and greatest of the
grizzlies.
But they had no realization of the full dreadful-
ness of the plan. They had n't heard the more re-
cent history of the Killer, — the facts that Simom
had just learned from Dave. Strange and dark
conjecturing occupied Simon's mind, and he knew
— in a moment's thought — that something more;
than terror and indignity might be Bruce's fate.
But his passion was ripe for what might come.
The few significant facts that they did not know
were merely that the Killer had already found men
out, that he had learned in an instant's meeting with
Hudson beside Little River that men were no
longer to be feared, and worse, that he was raving
and deadly from the pain of the wound that Bruce's
bullet had inflicted.
The circle of faces faded out for both of them as
the eyes of Bruce and Simon met and clashed and
battled in the silent room.
XXIII
" IF Simon Turner is n't a coward," Bruce said
slowly to the clan, " he will give me a chance to
fight him now."
The room was wholly silent, and the clan turned
expectant eyes to their leader. Simon scowled, but
he knew he had to make answer. His eyes crept
over Bruce's powerful body. ' There is no obliga-
tion on my part to answer any challenges by you,"
he said. " You are a prisoner. But if you think
you can sleep better in the pasture because of it,
I '11 let you have your chance. Take off his ropes."
A knife slashed at his bonds. Simon stood up,
and Bruce sprang from his chair like a wild cat, aim-
ing his hardened knuckles straight for the leering
lips. He made the attack with astonishing swift-
ness and power, and his intention was to deliver at
least one terrific blow before Simon could get his
arms up to defend himself. He had given the huge
clan leader credit for tremendous physical strength,
but he did n't think that the heavy body could move
with real agility. But the great muscles seemed to
snap into tension, the head ducked to one side, and
his own huge fists struck out.
If Bruce's blow had gone straight home where it
had been aimed, Simon would have had nothing
more to say for a few moments at least. When
The Blood Atonement 193
man was built of clay, Nature saw fit to leave him
with certain imperfections lest he should think him-
self a god, and a weak spot in the region of the chin
is one of them. The jaw bones carry the impact
of a hard blow to certain nerve centers near the
temples, and restful sleep comes quickly. There
are never any ill effects, unless further damage is
inflicted while unconsciousness is upon him. In
spite of the fact that Simon got quickly into a posi-
tion of defense, that first blow still had a fair chance
of bringing the fight to an abrupt end. But still
another consideration remained.
Bruce's muscles had refused to respond. The
leap had been powerful and swift yet wholly inac-
curate. And the reason was just that his wrists
and ankles had been numbed by the tight thongs
by which they had been confined. Simon met the
leap with a short, powerful blow into Bruce's face;
and he reeled backward. The arms of the clans-
men alone kept him from falling.
The blow seemed to daze Bruce; and at first his
only realization was that the room suddenly rang
with harsh and grating laughter. Then Simon's
words broke through it. " Put back the thongs,"
he ordered, " and go get your horses."
Bruce was dimly aware of the falling of a silence,
and then the arms of strong men half carrying him
to the door. But he could n't see plainly at first.
The group stood in the shadow of the building ; the
moon was behind. He knew that the clan had
brought their horses and were waiting for Simon's
command. They loosened the ropes from about
194 The Strength of the Pines
his ankles, and two of the clansmen swung him on
to the back of a horse. Then they passed a rope
under the horse's belly and tied his ankles anew.
Simon gave a command, and the strange file
started. The night air dispelled the mists in
Bruce's brain, and full realization of all things came
to him again. One of the men — he recognized
him as Young Bill — led the horse on which he rode.
Two of the clansmen rode in front, grim, silent, in-
credibly tall figures in the moonlight. The remain-
der rode immediately behind. Simon himself,
bowed in his saddle, kept a little to one side. Their
shadows were long and grotesque on the soft grass
of the meadows, and the only sound was the soft
footfall of their mounts.
A full mile distant across the lush fields the cav-
alcade halted about a grotesque shadow in the grass.
Bruce did n't have to look at it twice to know what
it was: the half -devoured body of the yearling calf
that had been the Killer's prey the night before.
From thence on, their operations became as outland-
ish occurrences in a dream. They seemed to know
just what to do. They took him from the saddle
and bound his feet again ; then laid him in the fra-
grant grass. They searched his pockets, taking the
forged note that had led to his downfall. " It saves
me a trip," Simon commented. He saw two of
them lift the torn body of the animal on to the back
of one of the horses, and he watched dully as the
horse plunged and wheeled under the unfamiliar
weight. He thought for an instant that it would
step upon his own prone body, but he did n't flinch.
The Blood Atonement 195
Simon spoke in the silence, but his words seemed to
come from far away.
" Quiet that horse or kill him," he said softly.
6 You can't drag the carcass with your rope — the
Killer would trace it if you did and maybe spoil the
evening for Bruce."
Strong arms sawed at the bits, and the horse
quieted, trembling. For a moment Bruce saw their
wiiite moonlit faces as they stared down at him.
" What about a gag? " one of them asked.
" No. Let him shout if he likes. There is no
one to hear him here."
Then the tall men swung on their horses and
headed back across the fields. Bruce watched them
dully. Their forms grew constantly more dim, the
sense of utter isolation increased. Then he saw the
file pause, and it seemed to him that words, too faint
for him to understand, reached him across the moon-
lit spaces. Then one of the party turned off to-
ward the ridge.
He guessed that it was Simon. He thought the
man was riding toward Linda's home.
He watched until the shadows had hidden them
all. Then, straining upward, he tested his bonds.
He tugged with the full strength of his arms, but
there was not the play of an inch between his wrists.
The Turners had done their work well. Not the
slightest chance of escape lay in this quarter.
He wrenched himself to one side, then looked
about him. The fields stretched even and distant
on one side, but he saw that the dark forest was but
fifty yards away on the other. He listened; and
196 The Strength of the Pines
the little night sounds reached him clearly. They
had been sounds to rejoice in before, — impulses to
delightful fancies of a fawn stealing through the
thickets, or some of the Little People in their scur-
ried, tremulous business of the night hours. But
lying helpless at the edge of the forest, they were
nothing to rejoice in now. He tried to shut his ears
to them.
He rolled again to his back and tried to find
peace for his spirit in the stars. There were
millions of them. They were larger and more
bright than any time he had ever seen them. They
stood in their high places, wholly indifferent and
impassive to all the strife and confusion of the world
below them; and Bruce wished that he could
partake of their spirit enough so that he could rise
above the fear and bitterness that had begun to op-
press him. But only the pines could talk to them.
Only the tall trees, stretching upward toward them,
could reach into their mysterious calm.
His eyes discerned a thin filament of cloud that
had swept up from behind the ridges, and the sight
recalled him to his own position with added force.
The moonlight, soft as it was, had been a tremen-
dous relief to him. At least, it would have enabled
him to keep watch, and now he dreaded the fall of
utter darkness more than he had ever dreaded any-
thing in his life. It was an ancient instinct, com-
ing straight from the young days of the world when
nightfall brought the hunting creatures to the
mouth of the cave, but he had never really experi-
enced it before. If the clouds spread, the moon
The Blood Atonement 197
that was his last remaining solace would be ob-
scured.
He watched with growing horror the slow exten-
sion of the clouds. One by one the stars slipped be-
neath them. They drew slowly up to the moon
and for a long minute seemed to hover. They were
not heavy clouds, however, and in their thinner
patches the stars looked dimly through. Finally
the moon swept under them.
The shadow fell around Bruce. For the first
time he knew the age-old terror of the darkness.
Dreadful memories arose within him, — vague
things that had their font in the labyrinthal depths
of the germ-plasm. It is a knowledge that no man,
with the weapons of the twentieth century in his
hands and in the glow of that great symbol of do-
main, the camp fire, can really possess; but here,
bound hand and foot in the darkness, full under-
standing came to Bruce. He no longer knew him-
self as one of a dominant breed, master of all the
wild things in the world. He was simply a living
creature in a grim and unconquered world, alone
and helpless in the terror of the darkness.
The moonlight alternately grew and died as the
moon passed in and out of the heavier cloud patches.
Winds must have been jlowing in the high lanes of
the air, but there was no breath of them where Bruce
lay. The forests were silent, and the little rus-
tlings and stirrings that reached him from time to
time only seemed to accentuate the quiet.
He speculated on how many hours had passed.
He wondered if he could dare to hope that midnight
198 The Strength of the Pines
had already gone by and, through some divergence
from wilderness customs, the grizzly had failed to
return to his feast. It seemed endless hours since
he had reentered the empty rooms of Linda's home.
A wave of hope crept through the whole hydraulic
system of his veins. And then, as a sudden sound
reached him from the forests at one side, that bright
wave of hope turned black, receded, and left only
despair.
He heard the sound but dimly. In fact, except
for his straining with every nerve alert, he might
not have heard it at all. Nevertheless, distance
alone had dimmed it; it had been a large sound to
start with. So far had it come that only a scratch
on the eardrums was left of it; but there was no
chance to misunderstand it. It cracked out to
him through the unfathomable silence, and all the
elements by which he might recognize it were dis-
tinct. It was the noise of a heavy thicket being
broken down and parted before an enormous body.
He waited, scarcely breathing, trying to tell him-
self he had been mistaken. But a wiser, calmer
self deep within him would not accept the lie. He
listened, straining. Then he heard the sound
again.
Whoever came toward him had passed the heavy
brush by now. The sounds that reached him were
just faint and intermittent whispers, — first of a
twig cracking beneath a heavy foot, then the rattle
of two pebbles knocked together. Long moments
of utter silence would ensue between, in which he
could hear the steady drum of his heart in his breast
The Blood Atonement 199
and the long roll of his blood in his veins. The
shadows grew and deepened and faded and grew
again, as the moon passed from cloud to cloud.
The limbs of a young fir tree rustled and whis-
pered as something brushed against them. Leaves
flicked together, and once a heavy limb popped like
a distant small-calibered rifle as a great weight
broke it in two. Then, as if the gods of the wil-
derness were using all their ingenuity to torture him,
the silence closed down deeper than ever before.
It lasted so long that he began to hope again.
Perhaps the sounds had been made by a deer steal-
ing on its way to feed in the pastures. Yet he knew
the step had been too heavy for anything but the
largest deer, and their way was to encircle a thicket
rather than crash through it. The deer make it
their business always to go with silence in these
hours when the beasts of prey are abroad, and usu-
ally a beetle in the leaves makes more noise than
they. It might have been the step of one of the
small, black bears — a harmless and friendly wil-
derness dweller. Yet the impression lingered and
strengthened that only some great hunter, a beast
who feared neither other beasts nor men, had been
steadily coming toward him through the forest. In
the long silence that ensued Bruce began to hope
that the animal had turned off.
At that instant the moon slipped under a partic-
ularly heavy fragment of cloud, and deep darkness
settled over him. Even his white face was no
longer discernible in the dusk. He lay scarcely
breathing, trying to fight down his growing terror.
200 The Strength of the Pines
This silence could mean but one of two things.
One of them was that the creature who had made
the sounds had turned off on one of the many inter-
secting game trails that wind through the forest.
This was his hope. The alternative was one of de-
spair. It was simply that the creature had de-
tected his presence and was stalking him in silence
through the shadows.
He thought that the light would never come.
He strained again at his ropes. The dark cloud
swept on; and the moonlight, silver and bright,
broke over the scene.
The forest stood once more in sharp silhouette
against the sky. The moon stood high above the
tapering tops of the pines. He studied with strain-
ing eyes the dark fringe of shadows one hundred
feet distant. And at first he could see only the ir-
regularities cast by the young trees, the firs be-
tween which lay the brush coverts.
Then he detected a strange variation in the dark
border of shadows. It held his gaze, and its out-
lines slowly strengthened. So still it stood, so
seemingly a natural shadow that some irregularly
shaped tree had cast, that his eyes refused to recog-
nize it. But in an instant more he knew the truth.
The shadow was that of a great beast that had
stalked him clear to the border of the moonlight.
The Killer had come for his dead.
XXIV
WHEN Linda returned home the events of the
night partook even of a greater mystery. The
front door was open, and she found plenty of evi-
dence that Bruce had returned from his journey.
In the center of the room lay his pack, a rifle slant-
ing across it.
At first she did not notice the gun in particular.
She supposed it was Bruce's weapon and that he
had come in, dropped his luggage, and was at pres-
ent somewhere in the house. It was true that one
chair was upset, but except for an instant's start
she gave no thought to it. She thought that he
would probably go to the kitchen first for a bite
to eat. He was not in this room, however, nor
had the lamp been lighted.
Her next idea was that Bruce, tired out, had gone
to bed. She went back softly to the front room,
intending not to disturb him. Once more she no-
ticed the upset chair. The longer she regarded it,
the more of a puzzle it became. She moved over
toward the pack and looked casually at the rifle.
In an instant more it was in her hands.
She saw at once that it was not Bruce's gun.
The action, make, and caliber were different. She
was not a rifle-woman, and the little shooting she
had done had been with a pistol; but even a layman
2O2 The Strength of the Pines
could tell this much. Besides, it had certain pecul-
iar notches on the stock that the gun Elmira had
furnished Bruce did not have.
She stood a moment in thought. The problem
offered no ray of light. She considered what
Bruce's first action would have been, on returning
to the house to find her absent. Possibly he had
gone in search of her. She turned and went to the
door of his bedroom.
She knocked on it softly. " Are you there,
Bruce? " she called.
No answer returned to her. The rooms, in
fact, were deeply silent. She tried the door
and found it unlocked. The room had not been
occupied.
Thoroughly alarmed, she went back into the
front room and tried to decipher the mystery of the
strange weapon. She couldn't conceive of any
possibility whereby Bruce would exchange his
father's trusted gun for this. Possibly it was an
extra weapon that he had procured on his journey.
And since no possible gain would come of her going
out into the forests to seek him, she sat down to wait
for his return. She knew that if she did start out
he might easily return in her absence and be further
alarmed.
The moments dragged by and her apprehension
grew. She took the rifle in her hands and, slipping
the lever part way back, looked to see if there were
a cartridge in the barrel. She saw a glitter of
brass, and it gave her a measure of assurance. She
had a pistol in her own room — a weapon that El-
The Blood Atonement 203
mira had procured, years before, from a passing
sportsman — and for a moment she considered get-
ting it also. She understood its action better and
would probably be more efficient with it if the need
arose, but for certain never-to-be-forgotten reasons
she wished to keep this weapon until the moment of
utmost need.
Her whole stock of pistol cartridges consisted
of six — completely filling the magazine of the pis-
tol. Closely watched by the Turners, she had been
unable to procure more. Many a dreadful night
these six little cylinders of brass had been a tremen-
dous consolation to her. They had been her sole de-
fense, and she knew that in the final emergency
she could use them to deadly effect.
Linda was a girl who had always looked her sit-
uations in the face. She was not one to flinch from
the truth and with false optimism disbelieve it. She
had the courage of many generations of frontiers-
men and woodsmen, and she had their vision too.
She knew these mountain realms; better still she
understood the dark passions of Simon and his fol-
lowers, and this little half-pound of steel and wood
with its brass shells might mean, in the dreadful
last moment of despair, deliverance from them. It
might mean escape for herself when all other ways
were cut off. In this wild land, far from the
reaches of law and without allies except for a de-
crepit old woman, the pistol and its deadly loads
had been her greatest solace.
But she relied on the rifle now. And sitting in
the shadow, she kept watch over the moonlit ridge.
204 The Strength of the Pines
The hotirs passed, and the clouds were starting
up from the horizon when she thought she saw
Bruce returning. A tall form came swinging
toward her, over the little trail that led between the
tree trunks. She peered intently. And in one
instant more she knew that the approaching figure
was not Bruce, but the man she most feared of any
one on earth, Simon Turner.
She knew him by his great form, his swinging
stride. Her thoughts came dear and true. It
was obvicus that his was no mission of stealth. He
was coming boldly, freely, not furtively; and he
must have known that he presented a perfect rifle
target from the windows. Nevertheless, it is well
to be prepared for emergencies. If life in the
mountains teaches anything, it teaches that. She
took the rifle and laid it behind a little desk, out of
sight. Then she went to the door.
" I want to come in, Linda," Simon told her.
" I told you long ago you could n't come to this
house," Linda answered through the panels. ' I
want you to go away."
Simon laughed softly. " You 'd better let me
in. I 've brought word of the child you took to
raise. You know who I mean."
Yes, Linda knew. "Do you mean Bruce?"
she asked. " I let Dave in to-night on the same
pretext. Don't expect me to be caught twice by
the same lie."
" Dave? Where is Dave? " The fact was that
the whereabouts of his brother had suddenly be-
come considerable of a mystery to Simon. All the
The Blood Atonement 205
way from the pasture where he had left his clan he
had been having black pictures of Dave. He had
thought about him and Linda out in the darkness
together, and his heart had seemed to smolder and
burn with jealousy in his breast. It had been a
great relief to him to find her in the house.
" I wonder — where he is by now," Linda an-
swered in a strange voice. " No one in this world
can answer that question, Simon. Tell me what
you want."
She opened the door. She could n't bear to show
fear of this man. And she knew that an appear-
ance of courage, at least, was the wisest course.
" No matter about him now. I want to talk to
you on business. If I had meant rough measures,
I wouldn't have come alone."
" No," Linda scorned. " You would have
brought your whole murdering band with you.
The Turners believe in overwhelming numbers."
The words stung him but he smiled grimly into
her face. " I 've come in peace, Linda," he said,
more gently. " I 've come to give you a last chance
to make friends."
He walked past her into the room. He straight-
ened the chair that had been upset, smiling
strangely the while, and sat down in it.
" Then tell me what you have to tell me," she
said. " I 'm in a hurry to go to bed — and this
really is n't the hour for calls."
He looked a long time into her face. She found
it hard to hold her own gaze. Many things could
be doubted about this man, but his power and his
206 The Strength of the Pines
courage were not among them. The smile died
from his lips, the lines deepened on his face. She
realized as never before the tempestuous passions
and unfathomable intensity of his nature.
1 We Ve never been good friends," Simon went
on slowly.
" We never could be," the girl answered.
" We Ve stood for different things."
" At first my efforts to make friends were just —
to win you over to our side. It did n't work — all
it did was to waken other desires in me — desires
that perhaps have come to mean more than the
possession of the lands. You know what they are.
You Ve always known — that any time you wished
— you could come and rule my house."
She nodded. She knew that she had won,
against her will, the strange, somber love of this
mighty man. She had known it for months.
" As my wife — don't make any mistake about
that. Linda, I 'm a stern, hard man. I Ve never
known how to woo. I don't know that I want to
know how, the way it is done by weaker men. It
has never been my way to ask for what I wanted.
But sometimes it seems to me that if I 'd been a
little more gentle — not so masterful and so re-
lentless — that I 'd won you long ago."
Linda looked up bravely into his face. " No, Si-
mon. You could have never — never won me ! Oh,
can't you see — even in this awful place a woman
wants something more than just brute strength
and determination. Every woman prays to find
strength in the man she loves — but it is n't the kind
The Blood Atonement 207
that you have, the kind that makes your men grovel
before you, and makes me tremble when I 'm talk-
ing to you. It 's a big, calm strength — and I
can't tell you what it is. It 's something the pines
have, maybe — strength not to yield to the pas-
sions, but to restrain, not to be afraid of, but to
cling to — to stand upright and honorable and
manly, and make a woman strong just to see it in
the man she loves."
He listened gravely. Her cheeks blazed. It
was a strange scene — the silent room, the im-
placable foes, the breathless suspense, the prophecy
and inspiration in her tones.
" Perhaps I should have been more gentle," he
admitted. " I might have forgotten — for a little
while — this surging, irresistible impulse in my
muscles — and tried just to woo you, gently and
humbly. But it 's too late now. I 'm not a fool.
I can't expect you to begin at the beginning. I
can only go on in my own way — my hard, remorse-
less, ruthless way.
" It is n't every man who is brave enough to see
what he wants and knock away all obstacles to get
it," he went on. " Put that bravery to my credit.
To pay no attention to methods, only to look for-
ward to the result. That has been my creed. It
is my creed now. Many less brave men would fear
your hatred — but I don't fear it as long as I pos-
sess what I go after and a hope that I can get you
over it. Many of my own brothers hate me, but
yet I don't care as long as they do my will. No
matter how much you scorn it, this bravery has
208 The Strength of the Pines
always got me what I wanted, and it will get me
what I want now."
The high color died in her face. She wondered
if the final emergency had come at last.
" I Ve come to make a bargain. You can take
it or you can refuse. On one side is the end of all
this conflict, to be my wife, to have what you want
— bought by the rich return from my thousands
of acres. And I love you, Linda. You know
that."
The man spoke the truth. His terrible, dark
love was all over him — in his glowing eyes, in his
drawn, deeply-lined face.
" In time, when you come around to my way of
thinking, you '11 love me. If you refuse — this last
time — I Ve got to take other ways. On that side
is defeat for you — as sure as day. The time is
almost up when the title to those lands is secure.
Bruce is in our hands — "
She got up, white- faced. " Bruce — ? "
He arose too. " Yes! Did you think he could
stand against us? I '11 show him to you in the
morning. To-night he 's paying the price for ever
daring to oppose my will."
She turned imploring eyes. He saw them, and
perhaps — far distant — he saw the light of
triumph too. A grim smile came to his lips.
" Simon," she cried. " Have mercy."
The word surprised him. It was the first time
she had ever asked this man for mercy. " Then
you surrender — ? "
" Simon, listen to me," she begged. " Let him
The Blood Atonement 209
go — and I won't even try to fight you any more.
I '11 let you keep those lands and never try any
more to make you give them up. You and your
brothers can keep them forever, and we won't try
to get revenge on you either. He and I will go
away."
He gazed at her in deepening wonderment. For
the moment, his mind refused to accept the truth.
He only knew that since he had faced her before,
some new, great strength had come to her, — that
a power was in her life that would make her forego
all the long dream of her days.
He had known perfectly the call of the blood
in her. He had understood her hatred of the
Turners, he could hate in the same way himself.
He realized her love for her father's home and how
she had dreamed of expelling its usurpers. Yet
she was willing to renounce it all. The power that
had come to her was one that he, a man whose code
of life was no less cruel and remorseless than that of
the Killer himself, could not understand.
" But why? " he demanded. " Why are you
willing to do all this for him? "
" Why? " she echoed. Once more the luster was
in her dark eyes. " I suppose it is because — I
love him."
He looked at her with slowly darkening face.
Passion welled within him. An oath dropped from
his lips, blasphemous, more savage than any wil-
derness voice. Then he raised his arm and struck
her tender flesh.
He struck her breast. The brutality of the man
2io The Strength of the Pines
stood forth at last. No picture that all the dread-
ful dramas of the wild could portray was more
terrible than this. The girl cried out, reeled and
fell fainting from the pain, and with smoldering
eyes he gazed at her unmoved. Then he turned
out of the door.
But the curtain of this drama in the mountain
home had not yet rung down. Half -unconscious,
she listened to his steps. He was out in the moon-
light, vanishing among the trees. Strange fancies
swept her, all in the smallest fraction of an instant,
and a voice spoke clearly. With all the strength
of her will she dispelled the mists of dawning un-
consciousness that the pain had wrought and crept
swiftly to the little desk placed against the wall.
Her hand fumbled in the shadow behind it and
brought out a glittering rifle. Then she crept to
the open doorway.
Lying on the floor, she raised the weapon to her
shoulder. Her thumb pressed back, strong and
unfaltering, against the hammer; and she heard it
click as it sprung into place. Then she looked
along the barrel until she saw the swinging form of
Simon through the sights.
There was no remorse in that cold gaze of hers.
The wings of death hovered over the man, ready to
swoop down. Her fingers curled tighter about the
trigger. One ounce more pressure, and Simon's
trail of wickedness and bloodshed would have come
to an end at last. But at that instant her eyes
widened with the dawn of an idea.
She knew this man. She knew the hatred that
The Blood Atonement 211
was upon him. And she realized, as if by an in-
spiration from on High, that before he went to his
house and to sleep he would go once more into the
presence of Bruce, confined somewhere among these
ridges and suffering the punishment of having op-
posed his will. Simon would want one look to see
how his plan was getting on; perhaps he would
want to utter one taunting word. And Linda saw
her chance.
She started to creep out of the door. Then she
turned back, crawled until she was no longer re-
vealed in the silhouette of the lighted doorway, and
got swiftly to her feet. She dropped the rifle and
darted into her own room. There she procured a
weapon that she trusted more, her little pistol,
loaded with six cartridges.
If she had understood the real nature of the
danger that Bruce faced she would have retained
the rifle. It shot with many times the smashing
power of the little gun, and at long range was many
times as accurate, but even it would have seemed an
ineffective defense against such an enemy as was
even now creeping toward Bruce's body. But
she knew that in a crisis, against such of the Turn-
ers as she thought she might have to face, it would
serve her much better than the more awkward,
heavier weapon. Besides, she knew how to wield
it, and all her life she had kept it for just such an
emergency.
The pain of the blow was quite gone now, ex-
cept for a strange sickness that had encompassed
her. But she was never colder of nerve and surer
212 The Strength of the Pines
of muscle. Cunningly she lay down again before
she crept through the door, so that if Simon
chanced to look about he would fail to see that she
followed him. She crept to the thickets, then stood
up. Three hundred yards down the slope she could
see Simon's dimming figure in the moonlight, and
swiftly she sped after him.
XXV
THE shadow that Bruce saw at the edge of the
forest could not be mistaken as to identity. The
hopes that he had held before — that this stalking
figure might be that of a deer or an elk — could no
longer be entertained. Men as a rule do not love
the wild and wailing sobs of a coyote, as he looks
down upon a camp fire from the ridge above.
Sleep does not come easily when a gaunt wolf walks
in a slow, inquisitive circle about the pallet, scarcely
a leaf rustling beneath his feet. And a few times,
in the history of the frontier, men have had queer
tinglings and creepings in the scalp when they have
happened to glance over their shoulders and see
the eyes of a great, tawny puma, glowing an odd
blue in the firelight. Yet Bruce would have had
any one of these, or all three together, in prefer-
ence to the Killer.
The reason was extremely simple. No words
have ever been capable of expressing the depths of
cowardice of which a coyote is capable. He will
whine and weep about a camp, like a soul lost be-
tween two worlds, but if he is in his right mind he
would have each one of his gray hairs plucked out,
one by one, rather than attack a man. The cun-
ning breed to which he belongs has found out that
it does n't pay. The wolf is sometimes disquiet-
214 The Strength of the Pines
ingly brave when he is fortified by his pack brethren
in the winter, but in such a season as this he is
particularly careful to keep out of the sight of man.
And the Tawny One himself, white-fanged and
long-clawed and powerful as he is, never gets far-
ther than certain dreadful, speculative dreams.
But none of these things was true of the Killer.
He had already shown his scorn of men. His very
stride showed that he feared no living creature that
shared the forest with him. In fact, he considered
himself the forest master. The bear is never a
particularly timid animal, and whatever timidity
the Killer possessed was as utterly gone as yester-
day's daylight.
Bruce watched him with unwinking eyes. The
shadow wavered ever so slightly, as the Killer
turned his head this way and that. But except to
follow it with his eyes, Bruce made no motion. The
inner guardians of a man's life — voices that are
more to be relied upon than the promptings of any
conscious knowledge — had already told him what
to do. These monitors had the wisdom of the pines
themselves, and they had revealed to him his one
hope. It was just to lie still, without a twitch of a
muscle. It might be that the Killer would fail to
discern his outline. Bruce had no conscious knowl-
edge, as yet, that it is movement rather than form
to which the eyes of the wild creatures are most
receptive. But he acted upon that fact now as if
by instinct. He was not lying in quite the exact
spot where the Killer had left his dead the preced-
ing night, and possibly his outline was not enough
The Blood Atonement 215
like it to attract the grizzly's attention. Besides,
in the intermittent light, it was wholly possible that
the grizzly would try to find the remains of his
feast by smell alone; and if this were lacking, and
Bruce made no movements to attract his attention,
he might wander away in search of other game.
For the first time in his life, Bruce knew Fear as
it really was. It is a knowledge that few dwellers
in cities can possibly have; and so few times has it
really been experienced in these days of civilization
that men have mostly forgotten what it is like. If
they experience it at all, it is usually only in a
dream that arises from the germ-plasm, — a night-
mare to paralyze the muscles and chill the heart and
freeze a man in his bed. The moon was strange
and white as it slipped in and out of the clouds, and
the forest, mysterious as Death itself, lightened and
darkened alternately with a strange effect of un-
reality; but for all that, Bruce could not make him-
self believe that this was just a dream. The dread-
ful reality remained that the Killer, whose name
and works he knew, was even now investigating
him from the shadows one hundred feet away.
The fear that came to him was that of the young
world, — fear without recompense, direct and prim-
itive fear that grew on him like a sickness. It was
the fear that the deer knew as they crept down their
dusky trails at night; it was the fear of darkness
and silence and pain and heaven knows what cruelty
that would be visited upon him by those terrible,
rending fangs and claws. It was the fear that can
be heard in the pack song in the dreadful winter
216 The Strength of the Pines
season, and that can be felt in strange overtones, in
the sobbing wail of despair that the coyote utters in
the half -darkness. He had been afraid for his life
every moment he was in the hands of the Turners.
He knew that if he survived this night, he would
have to face death again. He had no hopes of de-
liverance altogether. But the Turners were men,
and they worked with knife blade and bullet, not
rending fang and claw. He could face men
bravely ; but it was hard to keep a strong heart in
the face of this ancient fear of beasts.
The Killer seemed disturbed and moved slowly
along the edge of the moonlight. Bruce could trace
his movements by the irregularity in the line of
shadows. He seemed to be moving more cau-
tiously than ever, now. Bruce could not hear the
slightest sound.
For an instant Bruce had an exultant hope that
the bear would continue on down the edge of the
forest and leave him ; and his heart stood still as the
great beast paused, sniffing. But some smell in
the air seemed to reach him, and he came stealing
back.
In reality, the Killer was puzzled. He had come
to this place straight through the forest with the
expectation that food — flesh to tear with his fangs
— would be waiting for him. Perhaps he had no
actual memory of killing the calf the night before.
Possibly it was only instinct, not conscious intelli-
gence, that brought him back to what was left of
his feast the preceding night. And now, as he
waited at the border of the darkness, he knew that
The Blood Atonement 217
a strange change had taken place. And the Killer
did not like strangeness.
The smell that he had expected had dimmed to
such an extent that it promoted no muscular im-
pulse. Perhaps it was only obliterated by a
stranger smell, — one that was vaguely familiar
and wakened a slow, brooding anger in his great
beast's heart.
He was not timid; yet he retained some of his
natural caution and remained in the gloom while he
made his investigations. Probably it was a hunt-
ing instinct alone. He crept slowly up and down
the border of moonlight, and his anger seemed to
grow and deepen within him. He felt dimly that
he had been cheated out of his meal. And once be-
fore he had been similarly cheated; but there had
been singular triumph at the end of that experi-
ence.
All at once a movement, far across the pasture,
caught his attention. Remote as it was, he identi-
fied the tall form at once; it was just such a crea-
ture as he had blasted with one blow a day or two
before. But it dimmed quickly in the darkness.
It seemed only that some one had come, taken one
glance at the drama at the edge of the forest, and
had departed. Bruce himself had not seen the
figure ; and perhaps it was the mercy of Fate — not
usually merciful — that he did not. He might
have been caused to hope again, only to know a
deeper despair when the man left him without giv-
ing aid. For the tall form had been that of Simon
coming, as Linda had anticipated, for a moment's
2 1 8 The Strength of the Pines
inspection, of his handiwork. And seeing that it
was good, he had departed again.
The grizzly watched him go, then turned back to
his questioning regard of the strange, dark figure
that lay so prone in the grass in front. The dark-
ness dropped over him as the moon went behind a
heavy patch of cloud.
And in that moment of darkness, the Killer un-
derstood. He remembered now. Possibly the up-
right form of Simon had suggested it to him; pos-
sibly the wind had only blown straighter and thus
permitted him to identify the troubling smells. All
at once a memory flashed over him, — of a scene
in a distant glen, and similar tall figures that tried
to drive him from his food. He had charged then,
struck once, and one of the forms had lain very
still. He remembered the pungent, maddening
odor that had reached him after his blow had gone
home. Most clearly of all, he remembered how his
fangs had struck and sunk.
He knew this strange shadow now. It was just
another of that tall breed he had learned to hate,
and it was simply lying prone as his foe had done
after the charge beside Little River. In fact, the
still-lying form recalled the other occasion with
particular vividness. The excitement that he had
felt before returned to him now ; he remembered his
disappointment when the whistling bullets from the
hillside above had driven him from his dead. But
there were no whistling bullets now. Except for
them, there would have been further rapture beside
that stream; but he might have it now.
The Blood Atonement 219
His fangs had sunk home just once, before, and
his blood leaped as he recalled the passion he had
felt. The old hunting madness came back to him.
It was the fair game, this that lay so still in the
grass, just as the body of the calf had been and
just as the warm body of Hudson in the distant
glen.
The wound at his side gave him a twinge of pain.
It served to make his memories all the clearer. The
lurid lights grew in his eyes. Rage swept over
him.
But he didn't charge blindly. He retained
enough of his hunting caution to know that to stalk
was the proper course. It was true that there was
no shrubbery to hide him, yet in his time he had
made successful stalks in the open, even upon
deer. He moved farther out from the edge of the
forest.
At that instant the moon came out and revealed
him, all too vividly, to Bruce. The Killer's great
gray figure in the silver light was creeping toward
him across the silvered grass.
When Linda left her house, her first realization
was the need of caution. It would not do to let
Simon see her. And she knew that only her long
training in the hills, her practice in climbing the
winding trails, would enable her to keep pace with
the fast-walking man without being seen.
In her concern for Bruce, she had completely for-
gotten the events of the earlier part of the evening.
Wild and stirring though they were, they now
22O The Strength of the Pines
seemed to her as incidents of remote years, nothing
to be remembered in this hour of crisis. But she
remembered them vividly when, two hundred yards
from the house, she saw two strange figures coming
toward her between the moonlit tree trunks.
There was very little of reality about either.
The foremost figure was bent and strange, but she
knew that it could be no one but Elmira. The
second, however — half -obscured behind her — of-
fered no interpretation of outline at all at first.
But at the turn of the trail she saw both figures in
vivid profile. Elmira was coming homeward, bent
over her cane, and she led a saddled horse by its
bridle rein.
Still keeping Simon in sight, Linda ran swiftly
toward her. She did n't understand the deep awe
that stole over her, — an emotion that even her
fear for Bruce could not transcend. There was a
quality in Elmira's face and posture that she had
never seen before. It was as if she were walking in
her sleep, she came with such a strange heaviness
and languor, her cane creeping through the pine
needles of the trail in front. She did not seem to
be aware of Linda's approach until the girl was only
ten feet distant. Then she looked up, and Linda
saw the moonlight on her face.
She saw something else too, but she did n't know
what it was. Her own eyes widened. The thin
lips were drooping, the eyes looked as if she were
asleep. The face was a strange net of wrinkles in
the soft light. Terrible emotions had but recently
died and left their ashes upon it. But Linda knew
The Blood Atonement 221
that this was no time to stop and wonder and ask
questions.
" Give me the horse," she commanded. " I 'nx
going to help Bruce."
" You can have it," Elmira answered in an un-
familiar voice. " It 's the horse that — that Dave
Turner rode here — and he won't want him any
more."
Linda took the rein, passed it over the horse's
head, and started to swing into the saddle. Then
she turned with a gasp as the woman slipped some-
thing into her hand.
Linda looked down and saw it was the hilt of
the knife that Elmira had carried with her when the
two women had gone with Dave into the woods.
The blade glittered; but Linda was afraid to look
at it closely. ' You might need that, too," the old
woman said. "It may be wet — I can't remember,
But take it, anyway."
Linda hardly heard. She thrust the blade into
the leather of the saddle, then swung on her horse.
Once more she sought Simon's figure. Far away
she saw it, just as it vanished into the heavy timber
on top of the hill.
She rode swiftly until she began to fear that he
might hear the hoof beat of her mount; then she
drew up to a walk. And when she had crested the
hill and had followed down its long slope into the
glen, the moon went under the clouds for the first
time.
She lost sight of Simon at once. Seemingly her
effort to save Bruce had come to nothing, after all.
222 The Strength of the Pines
But she didn't turn back. There were light
patches in the sky, and the moon might shine forth
again.
She followed down the trail toward the cleared
lands that the Turners cultivated. She went to
their very edge. It was a rather high point, so she
waited here for the moon to emerge again. Never,
it seemed to her, had it moved so slowly. But all
at once its light flowed forth over the land.
Her eyes searched the distant spaces, but she
could catch no glimpse of Simon between the trees.
Evidently he no longer walked in the direction of
the house. Then she looked out over the tilled
lands.
Almost a quarter of a mile away she saw the
flicker of a miniature shadow. Only the vivid qual-
ity of the moonlight, against which any shadow was
clear-cut and sharp, enabled her to discern it at all.
It was Simon, and evidently his business had taken
him into the meadows. Feeling that she was on
the right track at last, she urged her horse for-
ward again, keeping to the shadow of the timber at
first.
Simon walked almost parallel to the dark fringe
for nearly a mile; then turned off into the tilled
lands. She rode opposite him and reined in the
horse to watch.
When the distance had almost obscured him, she
saw him stop. He waited a long time, then turned
back. The moon went in and out of the clouds.
Then, trusting to the distance to conceal her, Linda
rode slowly out into the clearing.
The Blood Atonement 223
Simon reentered the timber, his inspection seem-
ingly done, and Linda still rode in the general di-
rection he had gone. The darkness fell again, and
for the space of perhaps five minutes all the sur-
roundings were obscured. A curious sense of im-
pending events came over her as she headed on
toward the distant wall of forest beyond.
Then, the clouds slowly dimming under the
moon, the light grew with almost imperceptible en-
croachments. At first it was only bright enough
to show her own dim shadow on the grass. The
utter gloom that was over the fields lessened and
drew away like receding curtains ; her vision reached
ever farther, the shadows grew more clearly out-
lined and distinct. Then the moon rolled forth
into a wholly open patch of sky — a white sphere
with a sprinkling of vivid stars around it — and the
silver radiance poured down.
It was like the breaking of dawn. The fields
stretched to incredible distances about her. The
forest beyond emerged in distinct outline ; she could
see every irregularity in the plain. And in one in-
stant's glance she knew that she had found Bruce.
His situation went home to her in one sweep of
the eyes. Bruce was not alone. Even now a great,
towering figure was creeping toward him from the
forest. Linda cried out, and with the long strap
of her rein lashed her horse into the fastest pace
it knew.
Bruce did not hear her come. He lay in the soft
grass, waiting for death. A great calm had come
224 The Strength of the Pines
upon him; a strange, quiet strength that the pines
themselves might have lent to him ; and he made no
cry. In this dreadful last moment of despair the
worst of his terror had gone and left his thoughts
singularly clear. And but one desire was left to
him: that the Killer might be merciful and end his
frail existence with one blow.
It was not a great deal to ask for; but he knew
perfectly that only by the mercy of the forest gods
could it come to pass. They are usually not so kind
to the dying; and it is not the wild-animal way to
take pains to kill at the first blow. Yet his eyes
held straight. The Killer crept slowly toward him ;
more and more of his vast body was revealed above
the tall heads of the grass. And now all that Bruce
knew was a great wonder, — a strange expectancy
and awe of what the opening gates of darkness
would reveal.
The Killer moved with dreadful slowness and de-
liberation. He was no longer afraid. It was just
as it had been before, — a warm figure lying still
and helpless for his own terrible pleasure. A few
more steps and he would be near enough to see
plainly ; then — after the grizzly habit — to fling
into the charge. It was his own way of hunting, -
to stalk within a few score of feet, then to make a
furious, resistless rush. He paused, his muscles
setting. And then the meadows suddenly rang
with the undulations of his snarl.
Almost unconscious, Bruce did not understand
what had caused this utterance. But strangely,
the bear had lifted his head and was staring straight
The Blood Atonement 225
over him. For the first time Bruce heard the wild
beat of hoofs on the turf behind him.
He did n't have time to turn and look. There
was no opportunity even for a flood of renewed
hope. Events followed upon one another with
startling rapidity. The sharp, unmistakable crack
of a pistol leaped through the dusk, and a bullet
sung over his body. And then a wild-riding figure
swept up to him.
It was Linda, firing as she came. How she had
been able to control her horse and ride him into that
scene of peril no words may reveal. Perhaps, run-
ning wildly beneath the lash, his starting eyes did
not discern or interpret the gray figure scarcely a
score of yards distant from Bruce; and it is true
the grizzly's pungent smell — a thing to terrify
much more and to be interpreted more clearly than
any kind of dim form in the moonlight — was
blown in the opposite direction. Perhaps the lash-
ing strap recalled the terrible punishment the horse
had undergone earlier that evening at the hands of
Simon and no room was left for any lesser terror.
But most likely of all, just as in the case of brave
soldiers riding their horses into battle, the girl's own
strength and courage went into him. Always it
has been the same ; the steed partook of its rider's
own spirit.
The bear reared up, snarling with wrath, but for
a moment it dared not charge. The sudden ap-
pearance of the girl and the horse held him momen-
tarily at bay. The girl swung to the ground in
one leap, fired again, thrust her arm through the
226 The Strength of the Pines
loop of the bridle rein, then knelt at Bruce's side.
The white blade that she carried in her left hand
slashed at his bonds.
The horse, plunging, seemed to jerk her body
back and forth, and endless seconds seemed to go
by before the last of the thongs was severed. In
reality the whole rescue was unbelievably swift.
The man helped her all he could. ' Up — up into
the saddle," she commanded. The grizzly growled
again, advancing remorselessly toward them, and
twice more she fired. Two of the bullets went
home in his great body, but their weight and shock-
ing power were too slight to affect him. He went
down once more on all fours, preparing to charge.
Bruce, in spite of the fact that his limbs had been
nearly paralyzed by the tight bonds, managed to
grasp the saddlehorn. In the strength of new-born
hope he pulled himself half up on it, and he felt
Linda's strong arms behind him pushing up. The
horse plunged in deadly fear; and the Killer leaped
toward them. Once more the pistol cracked. Then
the horse broke and ran in a frenzy of terror.
Bruce was full in the saddle by then, and even
at the first leap his arm swept out to the girl on the
ground beside him. He swung her towards him,
and at the same time her hands caught at the arch-
ing back of the saddle. Never had her fine young
strength been put to a greater test than when she
tried to pull herself up on the speeding animal's
back. For the first fifty feet she was half-dragged,
but slowly — with Bruce's help — she pulled her-
self up to a position of security.
The Blood Atonement 227
The Killer's charge had come a few seconds too
late. For a moment he raced behind them in in-
sane fury, but only his savage growl leaped through
the darkness fast enough to catch up with them.
And the distance slowly widened.
The Killer had been cheated again; and by the
same token Simon's oath had been proved untrue.
For once the remorseless strength of which; he
boasted had been worsted by a greater strength ; and
love, not hate, was the power that gave it. For
once a girl's courage — a courage greater than that
with which he obeyed the dictates of his cruel will
— had cost him his victory. The war that he and
his outlaw band had begun so long ago had not yet
been won.
Indeed, if Simon could have seen what the moon
saw as it peered out from behind the clouds, he
would have known that one of the debts of blood
incurred so many years ago had even now been
paid. Far away on a distant hillside there was one
who gave no heed to the fast hoof beats of the
speeding horse. It was Dave Turner, and his
trail of lust and wickedness was ended at last. He
lay with lifted face, and there were curious dark
stains on the pine needles.
It was the first blood since the reopening of the
feud. And the pines, those tall, dark sentinels of
the wilderness, seemed to look down upon him in
passionless contemplation, as if they wondered at
the stumbling ways of men. Their branches rubbed
together and made words as the wind swept through
them, but no man may say what those words were.
BOOK THREE
THE COMING OF THE STRENGTH
XXVI
FALL was at hand at Trail's End. One night,
and the summer was still a joyous spirit in the land,
birds nested, skies were blue, soft winds wandered
here and there through the forest. One morning,
and a startling change had come upon the wilder-
ness world. The spirit of autumn had come with
golden wings.
The wild creatures, up and about at their pur-
suits long before dawn, were the first to see the
change. A buck deer — a noble creature with six
points on his spreading horns — got the first ink-
ling of it when he stopped at a spring to drink. It
was true that an hour before he had noticed a cu-
rious crispness and a new stir in the air, but he had
been so busy keeping out of the ambushes of the
Tawny One that he had not noticed it. The air
had been chill in his nostrils, but thanks to a heavy
growth of hair that — with mysterious foresight —
had begun to come upon his body, it gave him no
discomfort. But it was a puzzling and significant
thing that the water he bent to drink had been
transformed to something hard and white and
burning cold to the tip of his nose.
It was the first real freeze. True, for the past
230 The Strength of the Pines
few nights there had been a measure of tinkling,
cobweb frost on the ground in wet places, but even
the tender-skinned birds — always most watchful
of signs of this kind — had disregarded it. But
there was no disregarding this half -inch of blue ice
that had covered the spring. The buck deer
struck it angrily with his front hoofs, broke through
and drank ; then went snorting up the hill.
His anger was in itself a significant thing. In
the long, easy-going summer days, Blacktail had
almost forgotten what anger was like. He had
been content to roam over the ridges, cropping the
leaves and grass, avoiding danger and growing fat.
But all at once this kind of existence had palled
on him. He felt that he wanted only one thing —
not food or drink or safety — but a good, slashing,
hooking, hoof -carving battle with another buck of
his own species. An unwonted crossness had come
upon him, and his soft eyes burned with a blue fire.
He remembered the does, too — with a sudden leap
of his blood — and wondered where they were keep-
ing themselves. Being only a beast he did not
know that this new belligerent spirit was ,iust as
much a sign of fall as the soft blush that was com-
ing on the leaves. The simple fact was that fall
means the beginning of the rut — the wild mating
days when the bucks battle among themselves and
choose their harems of does.
He had rather liked his appearance as he saw
himself in the water of the spring. The last of
the velvet had been rubbed from his horns, and the
twelve tines (six on each horn) were as hard and
The Coming of the Strength 231
almost as sharp as so many bayonet points. As
the morning dawned, the change in the face of
nature became ever more manifest. The leaves of
the shrubbery began to change in color. The wind
out of the north had a keener, more biting quality,
and the birds were having some sort of exciting
debate in the tree tops.
The birds are always a scurried, nervous, rather
rattle-brained outfit, and seem wholly incapable of
making a decision about anything without hours of
argument and discussion. Their days are simply
filled with one excitement after another, and they
tell more scandal in an hour than the old ladies in a
resort manage in the entire summer. This slow
transformation in the color of the leaves, not to
mention the chill of the frost through their scanty
feathers, had created a sensation from one end of
birdland to another. And there was only one thing
to do about it. That was to wait until the darkness
closed down again, then start away toward the path
of the sun in search of their winter resorts in the
south.
The ^Little People in the forest of ferns beneath
were not such gay birds, and they did not have such
high-flown ideas as these feathered folk in the
branches. They didn't talk such foolishness and
small talk from dawn to dark. They did n't wear
gay clothes that were n't a particle of good to them
in cold weather. You can imagine them as be-
ing good, substantial, middle-class people, much
more sober-minded, tending strictly to business and
working hard, and among other things they saw no
232 The Strength of the Pines
need of flitting down to southern resorts for the
cold season. These people — being mostly ground
squirrels and gophers and chipmunks and rabbits -
had not been fitted by nature for wide travel and
had made all arrangements for a pleasant winter at
home. You could almost see a smile on the fat face
of a plump old gopher when he came out and found
the frost upon the ground; for he knew that for
months past he had been putting away stores for
just this season. In the snows that would follow
he would simply retire into the farthest recesses of
his burrow and let the winds whistle vainly above
him.
The larger creatures, however, were less compla-
cent. The wolves — if animals have any powers
of foresight whatever — knew that only hard days,
not luscious nuts and roots, were in store for them.
There would be many days of hunger once the
snow came over the land. The black bear saw the
signs and began a desperate effort to lay up as
many extra pounds of fat as possible before the
snows broke. Ashur's appetite was always as
much with him as his bobbed-off excuse for a tail,
and as he was more or less indifferent to a fair
supply of dirt, he always managed to put away
considerable food in a rather astonishingly short
period of time; and now he tried to eat all the faster
in view of the hungry days to come. He would
have need of the extra flesh. The time was com-
ing when all sources of food would be cut off by the
snows, and he would have to seek the security of hi-
bernation. He had already chosen an underground
The Coming of the Strength 233
abode for himself and there he could doze away in
the cold-trance through the winter months, subsist-
ing on the supplies of fat that he had stored next to
his furry hide.
The greatest of all the bears, the Killer, knew
that some such fate awaited him also. But he
looked forward to it with wretched spirit. He was
master of the forest, and perhaps he did not
like to yield even to the spirit of winter. His sav-
agery grew upon him every day, and his dislike
for men had turned to a veritable hatred. But
he had found them out. When he crossed their
trails again, he would not wait to stalk. They
were apt to slip away from him in this case and
sting him unmercifully with bullets. The thing
to do was charge quickly and strike with all his
power.
The three minor wounds he had received — two
from pistol bullets and one from Bruce's rifle —
had not lessened his strength at all. They did,
however, serve to keep his blood-heat at the explo-
sive stage most of the day and night.
The flowers and the grasses were dying ; the moths
that paid calls on the flowers had laid their eggs
and had perished, and winter lurked — ready to
pounce forth — just beyond the distant mountains.
There is nothing so thoroughly unreliable as the
mountain autumn. It may linger in entrancing
golds and browns month after month, until it is al-
most time for spring to come again; and again it
may make one short bow and usher in the winter.
To Bruce and Linda, in the old Folger home in
234 The Strength of the Pines
Trail's End, these fall days offered the last hope of
success in their war against the Turners.
The adventure in the pasture with the Killer had
handicapped them to an unlooked-for degree.
Bruce's muscles had been severely strained by the
bonds ; several days had elapsed before he regained
their full use. Linda was a mountain girl, hardy
as a deer, yet her nerves had suffered a greater
shock by the experience than either of them had
guessed. The wild ride, the fear and the stress,
and most of all the base blow that Simon had dealt
her had been too much even for her strong consti-
tution ; and she had been obliged to go to bed for a
few days of rest. Old Elmira worked about the
house the same as ever, but strange, new lights were
in her eyes. For reasons that went down to the
roots of things, neither Bruce nor Linda questioned
her as to her scene with Dave Turner in the coverts ;
and what thoughts dwelt in her aged mind neither
of them could guess.
The truth was that in these short weeks of trial
and danger whatever dreadful events had come to
pass in that meeting were worth neither thought nor
words. Both Bruce and Linda were down to es-
sentials. It is a descent that most human beings —
some time in their lives — find they are able to
make ; and there was no room for sentimentality or
hysteria in this grim household. The ideas, the
softnesses, the laws of the valleys were far away
from them; they were face to face with realities.
Their code had become the basic code of life : to kill
for self -protection without mercy or remorse.
The Coming of the Strength 235
They did not know when the Turners would at-
tack. It was the dark of the moon, and the men
would be able to approach the house without pre-
senting themselves as targets for Bruce's rifle. The
danger was not a thing on which to conjecture and
forget ; it was an ever-present reality. Never they
stepped out of the door, never they crossed a lighted
window, never a pane rattled in the wind but that
the wings of Death might have been hovering over
them. The days were passing, the date when the
chance for victory would utterly vanish was almost
at hand, and they were haunted by the ghastly fact
that their whole defense lay in a single thirty-
thirty rifle and five cartridges. Bruce's own gun
had been taken from him in Simon's house; Linda
had emptied her pistol at the Killer.
" We 've got to get more shells," Bruce told
Linda. " The Turners won't be such fools as to
wait until we have the moon again to attack. I
can't understand why they haven't already come.
Of course, they don't know the condition of our
ammunition supply, but it does n't seem to me that
that alone would have held them off. They are
sure to come soon, and you know what we could do
with five cartridges, don't you? "
" I know." She looked up into his earnest face.
" We could die — that 's all."
" Yes — like rabbits. Without hurting them
at all. I would n't mind dying so much, if
I did plenty of damage first. It 's death for
me, anyway, I suppose — and no one but a fool
can see it otherwise. There are simply too many
236 The Strength of the Pines
against us. But I do want to make some payment
first."
Her hand fumbled and groped for his. Her
eyes pled to him, — more than any words. " And
you mean you Ve given up hope? " she asked.
He smiled down at her, — a grave, strange little
smile that moved her in secret ways. " Not given
up hope, Linda," he said gently. They were stand-
ing at the door and the sunlight — coming low from
the South — was on his face. " I Ve never had any
hope to give up — just realization of what lay
ahead of us. I 'm looking it all in the face now,
just as I did at first."
" And what you see — makes you afraid? "
Yet she need not have asked that question. His
face gave an unmistakable answer: that this man
had conquered fear in the terrible night with the
Killer. " Not afraid, Linda," he explained, " only
seeing things as they really are. There are too
many against us. If we had that great estate be-
hind us, with all its wealth, we might have a chance ;
if we had an arsenal of rifles with thousands of car-
tridges, we might make a stand against them. But
we are three — two women and one man — and
one rifle between us all. Five little shells to be ex-
pended in five seconds. They are seven or eight,
each man armed, each man a rifle-shot. They are
certain to attack within a day or two — before we
have the moon again. In less than two weeks we
can no longer contest their title to the estate. A
little month or two more and we will be snowed in
— with no chance to get out at all."
The Coining of the Strength 237
" Perhaps before that," she told him.
" Yes. Perhaps before that."
They found a confirmation of this prophecy in
the signs of fall without — the coloring leaves, the
dying flowers, the new, cold breath of the wind.
Only the pines remained unchanged ; they were the
same grave sentinels they always were.
"And you can forgive me?" Linda asked
humbly.
" Forgive you? " The man turned to her in sur-
prise. " What have you done that needs to be for-
given? "
" Oh, don't you see? To bring you here — out
of your cities — to throw your lif e away. To en-
list you in a fight that you can't hope to win. I 've
killed you, that 's all I 've done. Perhaps to-night
— perhaps a few days later."
He nodded gravely.
" And I Ve already killed your smile," she went
on, looking down. ' You don't smile any more
the way you used to. You 're not the boy you were
when you came. Oh, to think of it — that it 's all
been my work. To kill your youth, to lead you
into this slaughter pen where nothing — noth-
ing lives but death — and hatred — and unhappi-
ness."
The tears leaped to her eyes. He caught her
hands and pressed them between his until pain
came into her fingers. " Listen, Linda," he com-
manded. She looked straight up at him. " Are
you sorry I came? "
" More than I can tell you — for your sake."
238 The Strength of the Pines
" But when people look for the truth in this
world, Linda, they don't take any one's sake into
consideration. They balance all things and give
them their true worth. Would you rather that you
and I had never met — that I had never received
Elmira's message — that you should live your life
up here without ever hearing of me? "
She dropped her eyes. "It is n't fair — to ask
me that —
" Tell me the truth. Has n't it been worth
while? Even if we lose and die before this night
is done, hasn't it all been worth while? Are you
sorry you have seen me change? Is n't the change
for the better — a man grown instead of a boy?
One who looks straight and sees clear?"
He studied her face; and after a while he found
his answer. It was not in the form of words at
first. As a man might watch a miracle he watched
a new light come into her dark eyes. All the gloom
and sorrow of the wilderness without could not af-
fect its quality. It was a light of joy, of exulta-
tion, of new-found strength.
" You had n't ought to ask me that, Bruce," she
said with a rather strained distinctness. " It has
been like being born again. There are n't any
words to tell you what it has meant to me. And
don't think I haven't seen the change in you, too
— the birth of a new strength that every day is
greater, higher — until it is — almost more than I
can understand. The old smiles are gone, but
something else has taken their place — something
much more dear to me — but what it is I can hardly
The Coming of the Strength 239
tell you. Maybe it 's something that the pines
have."
But he hadn't wholly forgotten how to smile.
His face lighted as remembrance came to him.
" They are a different kind of smiles — that 's all,"
he explained. " Perhaps there will be many of
them in the days to come. Linda, I have no re-
grets. I Ve played the game. Whether it was
Destiny that brought me here, or only chance, or
perhaps — if we take just life and death into con-
sideration — just misfortune, whatever it is I feel
no resentment toward it. It has been the worth-
while adventure. In the first place, I love the
woods. There 's something else in them besides
death and hatred and unhappiness. Besides, it
seems to me that I can understand the whole world
better than I used to. Maybe I can begin to see a
big purpose and theme running through it all —
but it 's not yet clear enough to put into words.
Certain things in this world are essentials, certain
other ones are froth. And I see which things be-
long to one class and which to another so much
more clearly than I did before. One of the things
that matters is throwing one's whole life into what-
ever task he has set out to do — whether he fails or
succeeds doesn't seem greatly to matter. The
main thing, it appears to me, is that he has tried.
To stand strong and kind of calm, and not be
afraid — if I can always do it, Linda, it is all I ask
for myself. Not to flinch now. Not to give up as
long as I have the strength for another step. And
to have you with me — all the way."
240 The Strength of the Pines
" Then you and I —take fresh heart? "
" We Ve never lost heart, Linda."
" Not to give up, but only be glad we Ve tried? "
" Yes. And keep on trying."
"With no regrets?"
" None — and maybe to borrow a little strength
from the pines ! "
This was their new pact. To stand firm and
strong and unflinching, and never to yield as long
as an ounce of strength remained. As if to seal it,
her arms crept about his neck and her soft lips
pressed his.
XXVII
TOWARD the end of the afternoon Linda saddled
the horse and rode down the trail toward Martin's
store. She had considerable business to attend to.
Among other things, she was going to buy thirty-
thirty cartridges, — all that Martin had in stock.
She had some hope of securing an extra gun or two
with shells to match. The additional space in her
pack was to be filled with provisions.
For she was faced with the unpleasant fact that
her larder was nearly empty. The jerked venison
was almost gone ; only a little flour and a few canned
things remained. She had space for only small
supplies on the horse's back, and there would be no
luxuries among them. Their fare had been plain
up to this time ; but from now on it was to consist
of only such things as were absolutely necessary to
sustain life.
She rode unarmed. Without informing him of
the fact, the rifle had been left for Bruce. She did
not expect for herself a rifle shot from ambush —
for the simple reason that Simon had bidden other-
wise — and Bruce might be attacked at any mo-
ment.
She was dreaming dreams, that day. The talk
with Bruce had given her fresh heart, and as she
rode down the sunlit trail the future opened up en-
242 The Strength of the Pines
trancing vistas to her. Perhaps they yet could
conquer, and that would mean reestablishment on
the far-flung lands of her father. Matthew Folger
had possessed a fertile farm also, and its green pas-
tures might still be utilized. It suddenly occurred
to her that it would be of interest to turn off the
main trail, take a little dim path up the ridge that
she had discovered years before, and look over
these lands. The hour was early; besides, Bruce
would find her report of the greatest interest.
She jogged slowly along in the Western fashion,
— which means something quite different from
army fashion or sportsman fashion. Western
riders do not post. Riding is not exercise to them;
it is rest. They hang limp in the saddle, and all
jar is taken up, as if by a spring, somewhere in the
region of the floating ribs that only a physician
can correctly designate. They never sit firm, these
Western riders, and as a rule their riding is not a
particularly graceful thing to watch. But they do
not care greatly about grace as long as they may
encompass their fifty miles a day and still be fresh
enough for a country dance at night. There are
many other differences in Western and Eastern
riding, one of them being the way in which the
horse is mounted. Another difference is the riding
habit. Linda had no trim riding trousers, with tall
glossy boots, red coat, and stock. It was rather
doubtful whether she knew such things existed.
She did, however, wear a trim riding skirt of khaki
and a middie blouse washed spotlessly clean by her
own hands ; and no one would have missed the other
The Coming of the Strength 243
things. It is an indisputable fact that she made a
rather alluring picture — eyes bright and hair dark
and strong arms bare to the elbow — as she came
riding down the pine-needle trail.
She came to the opening of the dimmer trail and
turned down it. She did not jog so easily now.
The descent was more steep. She entered a still
glen, and the color in her cheeks and the soft brown
of her arms blended well with the new tints of the
autumn leaves. Then she turned up a long ridge.
The trail led through an old burn — a bleak,
eerie place where the fire had swept down the
forest, leaving only strange, black palings here and
there — and she stopped in the middle of it to look
down. The mountain world was laid out below her
as clearly as in a relief map. Her eyes lighted as
its beauty and its fearsomeness went home to her,
and her keen eyes slowly swept over the surround-
ing hill tops. Then for a long moment she sat very
still in the saddle.
A thousand feet distant, on the same ridge on
which she rode, she caught sight of another horse.
It held her gaze, and in an instant she discerned the
rather startling fact that it was saddled, bridled,
and apparently tied to a tree. Momentarily she
thought that its rider was probably one of the
Turners who was at present at work on the old
Folger farm; yet she knew at once the tilled lands
were still too far distant for that. She studied
closely the maze of light and shadow of the under-
brush and in a moment more distinguished the
figure of the horseman.
244 The Strength of the Pines
It was one of the Turners, — but he was not
working in the fields. He was standing near the
animal's head, back to her, and his rifle lay in his
arms. And then Linda understood.
He was simply guarding the trail down to Mar-
tin's store. Except for the fact that she had turned
off the main trail by no possibility could she have
seen him and escaped whatever fate he had for her.
She held hard on her faculties and tried to puzzle
it out. She understood now why the Turners had
not as yet made an attack upon them at their home.
It was n't the Turner way to wage open warfare.
They were the wolves that struck from ambush, the
rattlesnakes that lunged with poisoned fangs from
beneath the rocks. There was some security for
her in the Folger home, but none whatever here.
There she had a strong man to fight for her, a loaded
rifle, and under ordinary conditions the Turners
could not hope to batter down the oaken door and
overwhelm them without at least some loss of life.
For all they knew, Bruce had a large stock of rifles
and ammunition, — and the Turners did not look
forward with pleasure to casualties in their ranks.
The much simpler way was to watch the trail.
They had known that sooner or later one of them
would attempt to ride down after either supplies
or aid. Linda was a mountain girl and she knew
the mountain methods of procedure ; and she knew
quite well what she would have had to expect if she
had not discovered the ambush in time. She did n't
think that the sentry would actually fire on her; he
would merely shoot the horse from beneath her.
The Coming of the Strength 245
It would be a simple feat by the least of the Turn-
ers, — for these gaunt men were marksmen if noth-
ing else. It wouldn't be in accord with Simon's
plan or desire to leave her body lying still on the
trail. But the horse killed, flight would be impos-
sible, and what would transpire thereafter she did
not dare to think. She had not forgotten Simon's
threat in regard to any attempt to go down
into the settlements. She knew that it still held
good.
Of course, if Bruce made the excursion, the sen-
try's target would be somewhat different. He
would shoot him down as remorselessly as he would
shatter a lynx from a tree top.
The truth was that Linda had guessed just right.
" It 's the easiest way," Simon had said. " They '11
be trying to get out in a very few days. If the man
-shoot straight and to kill! If Linda, plug the
horse and bring her here behind the saddle."
Linda turned softly, then started back. She did
not even give a second's thought to the folly of try-
ing to break through. She watched the sentinel
over her shoulder and saw him turn about. Far
distant though he was, she could tell by the move-
ment he made that he had discovered her.
She was almost four hundred yards away by
then, and she lashed her horse into a gallop. The
man cried to her to halt, a sound that came dim and
strange through the burn, and then a bullet sent up
a cloud of ashes a few feet to one side. But the
range was too far even for the Turners, and she
only urged her horse to a faster pace.
246 The Strength of the Pines
She flew down the narrow trail, turned into the
main trail, and galloped wildly toward home. But
the sentry did not follow her. He valued his pre-
cious life too much for that. He had no intention
of offering himself as a target to Bruce's rifle as he
neared the house. He headed back to report to
Simon.
Young Bill — for such had been the identity of
the sentry — found his chief in the large field not
far distant from where Bruce had been confined.
The man was supervising the harvest of the fall
growth of alfalfa. The two men walked slowly
away from the workers, toward the fringe of
woods.
" It looks as if we '11 have to adopt rough meas-
ures, after all," Young Bill began.
Simon turned with flushing face. " Do you
mean you let him get past you — and missed him?
Young Bill, if you 've done that — "
' Won't you wait till I Ve told you how it hap-
pened? It wasn't Bruce; it was Linda. For
some reason I can't dope out, she went up in the big
burn back of me and saw me — when I was too far
off to shoot her horse. Then she rode back like a
witch. They '11 not take that trail again."
" It means one of two things," Simon said after
a pause. " One of them is to starve 'em out. It
won't take long. Their supplies won't last for-
ever. The other is to call the clan and attack — to-
night."
" And that means loss of life."
" Not necessarily. I don't know how many
The Coming of the Strength 247
guns they Ve got. If any of you were worth your
salt, you 'd find out those things. I wish Dave was
here."
And Simon spoke the truth for once in his life:
he did miss Dave. And it was not that there had
been any love lost between them. But the truth
was — although Simon never would have admitted
it — the weaker man's cunning had been of the
greatest aid to his chief. Simon needed it sorely
now.
" And we can't wait till to-morrow night — be-
cause we Ve got the moon then," Young Bill added.
" Just a new moon, but it will prevent a surprise
attack. I suppose you still have hopes of Dave
coming back? "
" I don't see why not. I '11 venture to say now
he 's off on some good piece of business — doing
something none of the rest of you have thought of.
He '11 come riding back one of these days with
something actually accomplished. I see no reason
for thinking that he 's dead. Bruce has n't had any
chance at him that I know of. But if I thought he
was — there 'd be no more waiting. We 'd tear
down that nest to-night."
Simon spoke in his usual voice — with the same
emphasis, the same undertones of passion. But the
last words ended with a queer inflection. The truth
was that he had slowly become aware that Young
Bill was not giving him his full attention, but
rather was gazing off — unfamiliar speculation in
his eyes — toward the forests beyond.
Simon's impulse was to follow the gaze; yet he
248 The Strength of the Pines
would not yield to it. " Well? " he demanded.
" I 'm not talking to amuse myself."
The younger man seemed to start. His eyes
were half -closed; and there was a strange look of
intentness about his facial lines when he turned
back to Simon. * You have n't missed any stock? "
he asked abruptly.
Simon's eyes widened. " No. Why? "
" Look there — over the forest." Young Bill
pointed. Simon shielded his eyes from the sunset
glare and studied the blue-green skyline above the
fringe of pines. There were many grotesque, black
birds wheeling on slow wings above the spot. Now
and then they dropped down, out of sight behind
the trees.
" Buzzards! " Simon exclaimed.
" Yes," Young Bill answered quietly. " You
see, it is n't much over a mile from Folger's house
— in the deep woods. There 's something dead
there, Simon. And I think we 'd better look to
see what it is."
" You think — " Then Simon hesitated and
looked again with reddening eyes toward the glid-
ing buzzards.
" I think — that maybe we 're going to find
Dave," Young Bill replied.
XXVIII
THE darkness of this October night fell before
its time. The twilight at Trail's End is never long
in duration, due to the simple fact that the moun-
tains cut off the flood of light from the west after
the setting of the sun, but to-night there seemed
none at all. The reason was merely that heavy
banks of clouds swept up from the southeast just
after sunset.
They came .with rather startling rapidity and al-
most immediately completely filled the sky. Young
Bill had many things on his mind as he rode be-
neath them, yet he found time to gaze at them with
some curiosity. They were of singular greenish
hue, and they hung so low that the tops of near-
by mountains were obscured.
The fact that there would be no moon to-night
was no longer important. The clouds would have
cut off any telltale light that might illumine the
activities of the Turners. There would not be even
the dim mist of starlight.
Young Bill rode from house to house through
the estate, — the homes occupied by Simon's broth-
ers and cousins and their respective families. He
knocked on each door and he only gave one little
message. " Simon wants you at the house," he said,
" and come heeled."
250 The Strength of the Pines
He would turn to go, but always a singular quiet
and breathlessness remained in the homes after his
departure. There would be a curious exchange of
glances and certain significant sounds. One of
them was the metallic click of cartridges being
slipped into the magazine of a rifle. Another was
the buckling on of spurs, and perhaps the rattle of
a pistol in its holster. Before the night fell in
reality, the clan came riding — strange, tall figures
in the half-darkness — straight for Simon's house.
His horse was saddled too, and he met them in
front of his door. And in a very few words he
made all things plain to them.
" We 've found Dave," he told them simply.
" Most of you already know it. We Ve decided
there is n't any use of waiting any more. We 're
going to the Folger house to-night."
The men stood silent, breathing hard. The
clouds seemed to lower, menacingly, toward them.
Simon spoke very quietly, yet his voice carried far.
In their growing excitement they did not observe
the reason, that a puzzling, deep calm had come
over the whole wilderness world. Even in the
quietest night there is usually a faint background of
winds in the mountain realms — troubled breaths
that whisper in the thickets and rustle the dead
leaves — but to-night the heavy air had no breath
of life.
" To-night Bruce Folger is going to pay the
price, just as I said." He spoke rather boastingly;
perhaps more to impress his followers than from
impulse. Indeed, the passion that he felt left no
The Coining of the Strength 251
room for his usual arrogance. " Fire on sight. Bill
and I will come from the rear, and we will be ready
to push through the back door the minute you
break through the front. The rest of you surround
the house on three sides. And remember — no man
is to touch Linda."
They nodded grimly; then the file of horsemen
started toward the ridge. Far distant they heard
a sound such as had reached them often in summer
but was unfamiliar in fall. It was the faint rumble
of distant thunder.
Bruce and Linda sat in the front room of the
Folger house, quiet and watchful and unafraid.
It was not that they did not realize their danger.
They had simply taken all possible measures of
defense ; and they were waiting for what the night
would bring forth.
" I know they '11 come to-night," Linda had
said. ' To-morrow night there will be a moon,
and though it won't give much light, it will hurt
their chances of success. Besides — they 've found
that their other plot — to kill you from ambush —
isn't going to work."
Bruce nodded and got up to examine the shut-
ters. He wanted no ray of light to steal out into
the growing darkness and make a target. It was
a significant fact that the rifle did not occupy its
usual place behind the desk. Bruce kept it in his
hands as he made the inspection. Linda had her
empty pistol, knowing that it might — in the may-
hap of circumstance — be of aid in frightening an
252 The Strength of the Pines
assailant. Old Elmira sat beside the fire, her stiff
fingers busy at a piece of sewing.
' You know — " Bruce said to her, " that we
are expecting an attack to-night? "
The woman nodded, but did n't miss a stitch. No
gleam of interest came into her eyes. Bruce's gaze
fell to her work basket, and something glittered
from its depth. Evidently Elmira had regained
her knife.
He went back to his chair beside Linda, and the
two sat listening. They had never known a more
quiet night. They listened in vain for the little
night sounds that usually come stealing, so hushed
and tremulous, from the forest. The noises that
always, like feeble ghosts, dwell in a house at night
— the little explosions of a scraping board or a
banging shutter or perhaps a mouse, scratching in
the walls — were all lacking too. And they both
started, ever so slightly, when they heard a distant
rumble of thunder.
" It 's going to storm," Linda told him.
" Yes. A thunderstorm — rather unusual in
the fall, is n't it?"
" Almost unknown. It 's growing cold too."
They waited a breathless minute, then the thun-
der spoke again. It was! immeasurably nearer.
It was as if it had leaped toward them, through
the darkness, with incredible speed in the minute
that had intervened. The last echo of the sound
was not dead when they heard it a third time.
The storm swept toward them and increased in
fury. On a distant hillside the strange file that
The Coming of the Strength 253
was the Turners halted, then gathered around
Simon. Already the lightning made vivid, white
gashes in the sky and illumined — for a breathless
instant — the long sweep of the ridge above them.
" We '11 make good targets in the lightning," Old
Bill said.
" Ride on," Simon ordered. " You know a man
can't find a target in the hundredth of a second of a
lightning flash. We 're not going to turn back
now."
They rode on. Far away they heard the whine
and roar of wind, and in a moment it was upon
them. The forest was no longer silent. The peal
of the thunder was almost continuous.
The breaking of the storm seemed to rock the
Folger house on its foundation. Both Linda and
Bruce leaped to their feet; but they felt a little
tingle of awe when they saw that old Elmira still
sat sewing. It was as if the calm that dwelt in the
Sentinel Pine outside had come down to abide in
her. No force that the world possessed could ever
take it from her.
They heard the rumble and creak of the trees as
the wind smote them, and the flame of the lamp
danced wildly, filling the room with flickering
shadows. Bruce straightened, the lines of his face
setting deep. He glanced once more at the rifle
in his hands.
" Linda," he said, " put out that fire. If there 's
going to be an attack, we 'd have a better chance
if the room were in darkness. We can shoot
through the door then."
254 The Strength of the Pines
She obeyed at once, knocking the burning sticks
apart and drenching them with water. They hissed
and steamed, but the noise of the storm almost
effaced the sound. " Now the light? " Linda
asked.
' Yes. See where you are and have everything
ready."
She took off the glass shade of the lamp, and the
little gusts of wind that crept in the cracks of the
windows immediately extinguished the flame. The
darkness dropped down. Then Bruce opened the
door.
The whole wilderness world struggled in the
grasp of the storm. The scene was such that no
mortal memory could possibly forget. They saw
it in great, vivid glimpses in the intermittent flashes
of the lightning, and the world seemed no longer
that which they had come to know. Chaos wras
upon it. They saw young trees whipping in the
wind, their slender branches flailing the air. They
saw the distant ridges in black and startling con-
trast against the lighted sky. The tall tops of the
trees wagged back and forth in frenzied signals;
their branches smote and rubbed together. And
just without their door the Sentinel Pine stood with
top lifted to the fury of the storm.
A strange awe swept over Bruce. A moment
later he was to behold a sight that for the moment
would make him completely forget the existence of
the great tree; but for an instant he poised at the
brink of a profound and far-reaching discovery.
There was a great lesson for him in that dark,
The Coming of the Strength 255
towering figure that the lightning revealed. Even
in the fury of the storm it still stood infinitely calm,
watchful, strong as the mountains themselves. Its
great limbs moved and spoke; its top swayed back
and forth, yet still it held its high place as Sentinel
of the Forest, passionless, patient, talking through
the murk of clouds to the stars that burned beyond.
" See/' Linda said. ' The Turners are coming."
It was true. Bruce dropped his eyes. Even
now the clan had spread out in a great wing and
was bearing down upon the house. The lightning
showed them in strange, vivid flashes. Bruce
nodded slowly.
" I see," he answered. " I 'm ready."
" Then shoot them, quick — '- when the lightning
shows them," she whispered in his ear. " They 're
in range now." Her hand seized his arm. " What
are you waiting for? "
He turned to her sternly. " Have you forgot-
ten we only have five shells? " he asked. " Go back
to Elmira."
Her eyes met his, and she tried to smile into them.
" Forgive me, Bruce — it 's hard — to be calm."
But at once she understood why he was waiting.
The flashes of lightning offered no opportunity for
an accurate shot. Bruce meant to conserve his
little supply of shells until the moment of utmost
need. The clan drew nearer. They were riding
slowly, with ready rifles. And ever the storm in-
creased in fury. The thunder was so close that it
no longer gave the impression of being merely
sound. It was a veritable explosion just above
-256 The Strength of the Pines
their heads. The flashes came so near together
that for an instant Bruce began to hope they would
reveal the attackers clearly enough to give him a
chance for a well-aimed shot. The first drops of
rain fell one by one on the roof.
His eyes sought for Simon's figure. To Simon
he owed the greatest debt, and to lay Simon low
might mean to dishearten the whole clan. But al-
though the attackers were in fair range now,
scarcely two hundred yards away, he could not
identify him. They drew closer. He raised his
gun, waiting for a chance to fire. And at that in-
stant a resistless force hurled him to the floor.
There was the sense of vast catastrophe, a great
rocking and shuddering that was lost in billowing
waves of sound ; and then a frantic effort to recall
his wandering faculties. A blinding light cut the
darkness in twain; it smote his eyeballs as if with
a physical blow; and summoning all his powers of
will he sprang to his feet.
There was only darkness at first ; and he did not
understand. But it was of scarcely less duration
than the flash of lightning. A red flame suddenly
leaped into the air, roared and grew and spread
as if scattered by the wind itself. And Brace's
breath caught in a sob of wonder.
The Sentinel Pine, that ancient friend and coun-
selor that stood not over one hundred feet from the
house, had been struck by a lightning bolt, its trunk
had been cleft open as if by a giant's ax, and the
flame was already springing through its balsam-
laden branches.
XXIX
BKUCE stood as if entranced, gazing with awed
face at the flaming tree. There was little danger
of the house itself catching fire. The wind blew
the flame in the opposite direction; besides, the
rains were beating on the roof. The fire in the
great tree itself, however, was too well started to be
extinguished at once by any kind of rainfall; but it
did burn with less fierceness.
Dimly he felt the girl's hand grasping at his arm.
Her fingers pressed until he felt pain. His eyes
lowered to hers. The sight of that passion-drawn
face — recalling in an instant the scene beside the
camp fire his first night at Trail's End — called him
to himself. "Shoot, you fool!" she stormed at
him. " TJie tree 's lighted up the whole country-
side, and you can't miss. Shoot them before they
run away."
He glanced quickly out. The clan that had
drawn within sixty yards of the house at the time
the lightning struck had been thrown into confu-
sion. Their horses had been knocked down by the
force of the bolt and were fleeing, riderless, away.
The men followed them, shouting, plainly revealed
in the light from the burning tree. The great torch
beside the house had completely turned the tables.
And Linda spoke true; they offered the best of
targets.
258 The Strength of the Pines
Again the girl's eyes were lurid slits between the
lids. Her lips were drawn, and her breathing was
strange. He looked at her calmly.
" No, Linda. I can't — "
' You can't," she cried. " You coward — you
traitor ! Kill — kill — kill them while there 's
time."
She saw the resolve in his face, and she snatched
the rifle from his hands. She hurled it to her
shoulder and three times fired blindly toward the
retreating Turners.
At that instant Bruce seemed to come to life.
His thoughts had been clear ever since the tree had
been struck ; his vision was straighter and more far-
reaching than ever in his life before, but now his
muscles wakened too. He sprang toward the girl
and snatched the rifle from her hand. She fought
for it, and he held her with a strong arm.
6 Wait — wait, Linda," he said gently.
4 You 've wasted three cartridges now. There are
only two left. And we may need them some other
time."
He held her from him with his arm ; and it was as
if his strength flowed into her. Her blazing eyes
sought his, and for a long second their wills battled.
And then a deep wonder seemed to come over her.
" What is it? " she breathed. " What have you
found out? "
She spoke in a strange and distant voice. Slowly
the fire died in her eyes, the drawn features relaxed,
her hands fell at her side. He drew her away from
the lighted doorway, out of the range of any of the
The Coming of the Strength 259
Turners that should turn to answer the rifle fire.
The wind roared over the house and swept by in
clamoring fury, the electric storm dimmed and les-
sened as it journeyed on.
These two knew that if death spared them in all
the long passage of their years, they could never for-
get that moment. The girl watched him breath-
lessly, oblivious to all things else. He seemed
wholly unaware of her now. There was something
aloof, impassive, infinitely calm about him, and a
great, far-reaching understanding was in his eyes.
Her own eyes suddenly filled with tears.
" Linda, there 's something come to me — and I
don't know that I can make you understand. I
can only call it strength — a new strength and a
greater strength than I ever had before. It 's
something that the pine — that great tree that we
just saw split open — has been trying to tell me for
a long time. Oh, can't you see, Linda? There it
stood, hundreds of years — so great, so tall, so wise
— in a moment broken like a reed. It takes away
my arrogance, Linda. It makes me see myself as
I really am. And that means — power."
His eyes blazed, and he caught her hands in his.
" It was a symbol, Linda, not only of the wil-
derness, but of powers higher and greater than the
wilderness. Powers that can look down, and not
be swept away by passion, and not try to tear to
pieces those who in their folly harm them. There 's
no room for such things as vengeance in this new
strength. There 's no room for murder, and mal-
ice, and hatred, and bloodshed."
260 The Strength of the Pines
Linda understood. She knew that this new-
found strength did not mean renunciation of her
cause. It did not mean that he would give over
his attempt to reinstate her as the owner of her
father's estates. It only meant that the impulse
of personal vengeance was dead within him. He
knew now — the same as ever — that the duty of
the men that dwell upon the earth is to do their
allotted tasks, and without hatred and without pas-
sion to overcome the difficulties that stand in the
way. She realized that if one of the Turners
should leap through the door and attack her, Bruce
would kill him without mercy or regret. She knew
that he would make every effort to bring the offend-
ers to the law. But the ability to shoot a fleeing
enemy in the back, because of wrongs done long
ago, was past.
Bruce 's vision had come to him. He knew that
if vengeance had been the creed of the powers that
ruled the world, the sphere would have been de-
stroyed with fire long since. To stand firm and
straight and unflinching; not to judge, not to con-
demn, not to resent; this was true strength. He
began to see the whole race of men as so many
leaves, buffeted by the winds of chance and circum-
stance; and was it for the oak leaf that the wind
carried swift and high to hold in scorn the
shrub leaf that the storm had already hurled to the
dust?
" I know," the girl said, her thoughts wandering
afar. " Perhaps the name for it all is — toler-
ance."
The Coming of the Strength 261
" Perhaps," he nodded. " And possibly it is
only — worship ! "
The Turners had gone. The dimming lightning
revealed the entire attacking party half a mile dis-
tant and out of rifle range on the ridge ; and Bruce
and Linda stole together out into the storm. The
green foliage of the tree had already burned away,
but some of the upper branches still glowed against
the dark sky. A fallen branch smoldered on the
ground, hissing in the rain, and it lighted their way.
Awed and mystified, Bruce halted before the
ruin of the great tree. He had almost forgotten
the stress of the moment just passed. It did not
even occur to him that some of his enemies, unseen
before, might still be lurking in the shadow, watch-
ing for a chance to harm. They stood a moment in
silence. Then Bruce uttered one little gasp and
stretched his arm into the hollow that the cleft in
the trunk had revealed.
The light from the burning branch behind him
had shown him a small, dark object that had evi-
dently been inserted in the hollow tree trunk
through some little aperture that had either since
been closed up or they had never observed. It was
a leathern wallet, and Bruce opened it under
Linda's startled gaze. He drew out a single white
paper.
He held it in the light, and his glance swept down
its lines of faded ink. Then he looked up with
brightening eyes.
"What is it? "she asked.
262 The Strength of the Pines
' The secret agreement between your father and
mine," he told her simply. " And we Ve won."
He watched her eyes brighten. It seemed to
him that nothing life had ever offered had given him
the same pleasure. It was a moment of triumph.
But before half of its long seconds were gone, it
became a moment of despair.
A rifle spoke from the coverts beyond, — one
sharp, angry note that rose distinct and penetrating
above the noise of the distant thunder. A little
tongue of fire darted, like a snake's head, in the
darkness. And the triumph on Bruce's face
changed to a singular look of wonder.
•
XXX
To Simon, the night had seemingly ended in
triumph after all. It had looked dark for a while.
The bolt of lightning, setting fire to the pine, had
deranged all of his plans. His men had been
thrown from their horses, the blazing pine tree had
left them exposed to fire from the house, and they
had not yet caught their mounts and rallied.
Young Bill and himself, however, had tied their
horses before the lightning had struck and had
lingered in the thickets in front of the house for
just such a chance as had been given them.
He hadn't understood why Bruce had not
opened fire on the fleeing Turners. He wondered
if his enemy were out of ammunition. The trag-
edy of the Sentinel Pine had had no meaning for
him; and he had held his rifle cocked and ready for
the instant that Bruce had shown himself.
Young Bill had heard his little exultant gasp
when Linda and Bruce had come out into the fire-
light. Plainly they had kept track of all the at-
tacking party that had been visible, and supposed
that all their enemies had gone. He felt the move-
ment of Simon's strong arms as he raised the rifle.
Those arms were never steadier. In the darkness
the younger man could not see his face, but his own
fancy pictured it with entire clearness. The eyes
264 The Strength of the Pines
were narrowed and red, the lines cut deep about
the bloodhound lips, and mercy was as far from
him as from the Killer who hunted on the distant
ridge.
But Simon didn't fire at once. The two were
coming steadily toward him, and the nearer they
were the better his chance of success in the unsteady
light. He sat as breathless, as wholly free from
telltale motion as a puma who waits in ambush for
an approaching deer. He meant to take careful
aim. It was his big chance, and he intended to
make the most of it.
The two had halted beside the ruined pine, but
for a moment he held his fire. They stood rather
close together; he wanted to wait until Bruce of-
fered a clear target. And at that instant Bruce had
drawn the leather wallet from the tree.
Curiosity alone stayed Simon's finger as Bruce
had opened it. He saw the gleam of the white
paper in the dim light ; and then he understood.
Simon was a man of rigid, unwavering self-con-
trol; and his usual way was to look a long time be-
tween the sights before he fired. Yet the sight of
that document — the missing Folger-Ross agree-
ment on which had hung victory or defeat — sent a
violent impulse through all his nervous system.
For the first time in his memory his reflexes got
away from him.
It had meant too much; and his finger pressed
back involuntarily against the trigger. He had n't
taken his usual deliberate aim, although he had seen
Bruce's figure clearly between the sights the in-
The Coming of the Strength 265
stant before he had fired. Simon was a rifle-man, bred
in the bone, and he had no reason to think that the
hasty aim meant a complete miss. He did realize,,
however, the difficulties of night shooting — a real-
ization that all men who have lingered after dusk in
the duck blind experience sooner or later — and he
looked up over his sights to see the result of his
shot. His self-control had completely returned to
him; and he was perfectly cold about the whole
matter.
From the first second he knew he hadn't com-
pletely missed. He raised his rifle to shoot again.
But Bruce's body was no longer revealed. Linda
stood in the way. It looked as if she had deliber-
ately thrown her own body as a shield between.
Simon spoke then, — a single, terrible oath of
hatred and jealousy. But in a second more he
saw his triumph. Bruce swayed, reeled, and fell
in Linda's arms, and he saw her half -drag him into
the house.
He stood shivering, but not from the cold that
the storm had brought. " Come on," he ordered
Young Bill. " I think we 've downed him for
good, but we 've got to get that paper."
But Simon did not see all things clearly. He
had little real knowledge of the little drama that
had followed his shot from ambush.
Human nature is full of odd quirks and twists,
and among other things, symptoms are misleading.
There is an accepted way for men to act when they
are struck with a rifle bullet. They are expected to
266 The Strength of the Pines
reel, to throw their arms wide, and usually to cry
out. The only trouble with these actions, as most
men who have been in French battle-fields know
very well, is that they do not usually happen in real
life.
Bruce, with Linda's eyes upon him, took one
rather long, troubled breath. And he did look
somewhat puzzled. Then he looked down at his
shoulder.
" I 'm hit, Linda," he said in a quiet way. " I
think just a scratch."
The tremendous shock of any kind of wound
from a thirty- forty caliber bullet had not seemingly
affected him outwardly at all. Linda's response
was rather curious. Some hours were to pass be-
fore he completely understood. The truth was that
the shock of that rifle bullet, ordinarily striking a
blow of a half -ton, had cost him for the moment an
ability to make any logical interpretation of events.
The girl moved swiftly, yet without giving an im-
pression of leaping, and stood very close and in front
of him. In one lightning movement she had made
of her own body a shield for his, in case the assassin
in the covert should shoot again.
She was trained to mountain ways, and instantly
she regained a perfect mastery of herself. Her
arms went about and seized his shoulders. " Stag-
ger," she whispered quickly. " Pretend to fall.
It 's the one chance to save you."
He dispelled the mists in his own brain and
obeyed her. He swayed, and her arms went about
him. Then he fell forward.
The Coming of the Strength 267
Her strong arms encircled his waist and with all
her magnificent young strength she dragged him to
the door. It was noticeable, however — to all eyes
except Bruce's — that she kept her own body as
much as she could between him and the ambush.
In an instant they were in the darkened room.
Bruce stood up, once more wholly master of him-
self.
" You 're not hurt bad? " she asked quickly.
" No. Just a deep scratch in the arm muscle
near the shoulder. Bullet just must have grazed
me. But it's bleeding pretty bad."
" Then there 's no time to be lost." Her hands
in her eagerness went again to his shoulder.
" Don't you see — he '11 be here in a minute. We '11
steal out the back door and try to ride down to the
courts before they can overtake us — ':
In one instant he had grasped the idea; and he
laughed softly in the gloom. " I know. I '11
snatch two blankets and the food. You get the
horse."
She sprang out the kitchen door and he hurried
into the bedrooms. He snatched two of the warm-
est blankets from the beds and hurled them over his
shoulder. He hooked the camp ax on his belt, then
hastened into the little kitchen. He took up the
little sack containing a few pounds of jerked veni-
son, spilled out a few pieces for Elmira, and carried
it — with a few pounds of flour — out to meet
Linda. The horse still stood saddled, and with
deft hands they tied on their supplies and fastened
the blankets in a long roll in front of the saddle.
268 The Strength of the Pines
" Get on," she whispered. " I '11 get up behind
you."
She spoke in the utter darkness; he felt her
breath against his cheek. Then the lightning came
dimly and showed him her face.
" No, Linda," he replied quietly. "You are go-
ing alone —
She cut him off with a despairing cry. "Oh,
please, Bruce — I won't. I '11 stay here then—
"Don't you see?" he demanded. "You can
make it out without me. I 'm wounded and bleed-
ing, and can't tell how long I can keep up. We 've
only got one horse, and without me to weigh him
down you can get down to the courts — "
" And leave you here to be murdered? Oh, don't
waste the precious seconds any more. I won't go
without you. I mean it. If you stay here, I do
too. Believe me if you ever believed anything."
Once more the lightning revealed her face, and
on it was the determination of a zealot. He knew
that she spoke the truth. He climbed with some
difficulty into the saddle. A moment more and she
swung up behind him.
The entire operation had taken an astonishingly
short period of time. Bruce had worked like mad,
wholly disregarding his injured arm. The rain had
already changed to snow, and the wet flakes beat
in his face, but he did not heed them. Just beyond,
Simon with ready rifle was creeping toward the
house.
' Which way? " Bruce asked.
" The out-trail — around the mountain," she whis-
The Coming of the Strength 269
pered. " Simon will overtake us on the other —
he 's got a magnificent horse. On the mountain
trail we '11 have a better chance to keep out of his
sight."
She spoke hurriedly, yet conveyed her message
with entire clearness. They knew what they had to
face, these two. Simon and whoever of the clan
was with him would lose no time in springing in
pursuit. They each had a strong horse, they knew
the trails, they carried long-range rifles and would
open fire at the first glimpse of the fugitives.
Bruce was wounded; slight as the injury was it
would seriously handicap them in such a test as this.
Their one chance was to keep to the remote trails, to
lurk unseen in the thickets, and try to break
through to safety. And they knew that only by
the doubtful mercy of the forest gods could they
ever succeed.
She took the reins and pulled out of the trail,
then encircled a heavy wall of brush. She did n't
wish to take the risk of Simon seeing their forms in
the dimming lightning and opening fire so soon.
Then she turned back into the trail and headed into
the storm.
Simon had clear enough memory of the rifle fire
that Linda had opened upon the clan to wish to
approach the house with care. It would be wholly
typical of the girl to lay her lover on his bed, then
go back to the window to wait for a sight of his as-
sassin. She could look straight along a rifle bar-
rel! A few moments were lost as Young Bill and
270 The Strength of the Pines
himself encircled the thickets, keeping out of the
gleam of the smoldering tree. Its light was almost
gone ; it hissed and glowed in the wet snow.
They crept up from the shadow, and holding
their rifles ready, opened the door. They were
somewhat surprised to find it unlocked. The truth
was it had been left thus by design; Linda did not
wish them to encircle the house to the rear door and
discover Bruce and herself in the act of departure.
The room was in darkness, and the two intruders
rather expected to find Bruce's body on the thresh-
old.
These were mountain men ; and they had been in
rifle duels before. They had the sure instincts of
the beasts of prey in the hills without, and among
other things they knew it was n't wise to stand long
in an open doorway with the firelight of the ruined
pine behind them. They slipped quickly into the
darkness.
Then they stopped and listened. The room was
deeply silent. They could n't hear the sound that
both of them had so confidently expected, — the
faint breathing of a dying man. Simon struck a
match. The room was quite deserted.
" What 's up? " Bill demanded.
Simon turned toward him with a scowl, and the
match flickered and burned out in his fingers.
" Keep your rifle ready. He may be hiding some-
where — still able to shoot."
They stole to the door of Linda's room and lis-
tened. Then they threw it wide.
One of their foes was in this room — an imp lac-
The Coming of the Strength 271
able foe whose eyes were glittering and strange in
the matchlight. But it was neither Bruce nor
Linda. It was old Elmira, cold and sinister as a
rattler in its lair. Simon cursed her and hurried
on.
At that instant both men began to move swiftly.
Holding his rifle like a club, Simon swung through
into; Bruce's room, lighted another match, then
darted into the kitchen. In the dim matchlight
the truth went home to him.
He turned, eyes glittering. " They Ve gone —
on Dave's horse," he said. "Thank God they've
only got one horse between 'em and can't go fast.
You ride like hell up the trail toward the store —
they might have gone that way. Keep close watch
and shoot when you can make 'em out."
" You mean — " Bill's eyes widened.
" Mean! I mean do as I say. Shoot by sound,
if you can't see them, and don't lose another second
or I '11 shoot you too. Aim for the man if a chance
offers — but shoot, anyway. Don't stop hunting
till you find them — they '11 duck off in the brush
sure. If they get through, everything is lost. I '11
take the trail around the mountain."
They raced to their horses, untied them, and
mounted swiftly. The darkness swallowed them
at once.
XXXI
IN the depth of gloom even the wild folk — usu-
ally keeping so close a watch on those that move on
the shadowed trails — did not see Linda and Bruce
ride past. The darkness is usually their time of
dominance, but to-night most of them had yielded
to the storm and the snow. They hovered in their
coverts. What movement there was among them
was mostly toward the foothills; for the message
had gone forth over the wilderness that the cold
had come to stay. The little gnawing folk, emerg-
ing for another night's work at filling their larders
with food, crept down into the scarcely less impene-
trable darkness of their underground burrows.
Even the bears, whose furry coats were impervious
to any ordinary cold, felt the beginnings of the cold-
trance creeping over them. They were remember-
ing the security and warmth of their last winter's
dens, and they began to long for them again.
The horse walked slowly, head close to the
ground. The girl made no effort to guide him.
The lightning had all but ceased ; and in an instant
it had become apparent that only by trusting to
the animal's instinct could the trail be kept at all;
almost at once all sense of direction was lost to
them. The snow and the darkness obscured the
outline of the ridges against the sky; the trail was
wholly invisible beneath them.
The Coming of the Strength 273
After the first hundred yards, they had no way
of knowing that the horse was actually on the
trail. While animals in the light of day cannot
see nearly so far or interpret nearly so clearly as
human beings, they usually seem to make their way
much better at night. Many a frontiersman has
been saved from death by realization of this fact;
and, bewildered by the ridges, has permitted his dog
to lead him into camp. But nature has never de-
vised a creature that can see in the utter darkness,
and the gloom that enfolded them now seemed
simply unfathomable. Bruce found it increasingly
hard to believe that the horse's eyes could make out
any kind of dim pathway in the pine needles.
The feeling grew on him and on Linda as well that
they were lost and aimlessly wandering in the
storm.
Of all the sensations that the wilderness can af-
ford, there are few more dreadful to the spirit than
this. It is never pleasant to lose one's bearings, —
and in the night and the cold and miles from any
friendly habitation it is particularly hard to bear.
Bruce felt the age-old menace of the wilderness as
never before. It always seemed to be crouching,
waiting to take a man at a disadvantage ; and like
the gods that first make mad those whom they would
destroy, it does n't quite play fair. He understood
now certain wilderness tragedies of which he had
heard : how tenderf eet — lost among the ridges —
had broken into a wild run that had ended nowhere
except in exhaustion and death.
Bruce himself felt a wild desire to lash his horse
274 The Strength of the Pines
into a gallop, but he forced it back with all his
powers of will. His calmer, saner self explained
that folly with entire clearness. It would mean
panic for the horse, and then a quick and certain
death either at the foot of a precipice or from a
blow from a low-hanging limb. The horse seemed
to be feeling its way, rather than seeing.
They were strange, lonely figures in the dark-
ness ; and for a long time they rode almost in silence.
Then Bruce felt the girl's breath as she whispered.
" Bruce," she said. " Let 's be brave and look
this matter in the face. Do you think we Ve got a
chance? "
He rode a long time before he answered. He
groped desperately for a word that might bring her
cheer, but it was hard to find. The cold seemed to
deepen about them, the remorseless snow beat into
his face.
" Linda," he replied, " it is one of the mercies of
this world for men always to think that they Ve got
a chance. Maybe it 's only a cruelty in our case."
" I think I ought to tell you something else. I
have n't the least way of knowing whether we are
on the right trail."
" I knew that long ago. Whether we are on any
trail at all."
" I Ve just been thinking. I don't know how
many forks it has. We might have already got on
a wrong one. Perhaps the horse is turned about
and is heading back home — toward Simon's
stables."
She spoke dully, and he thrust his arm back to
The Coming of the Strength 275
her. " Linda, try to be brave," he urged. " We
can only take a chance."
The horse plodded a few more steps. " Brave I
To think that it is you that has to encourage me —
instead of my trying to keep up your spirits. I
will try to be brave, Bruce. And if we don't live
through the night, my last remembrance will be
of your bravery — how you, injured and weak from
loss of blood, still remembered to give a cheery
word to me."
" I 'm not badly injured," he told her gently.
" And there are certain things that have come clear
to me lately. One of them is that except for you
— throwing your own precious body between — I
would n't be here at all."
The feeling that they had lost the trail grew upon
them. More than once the stirrup struck the bark
of a tree and often the thickets gave way beneath
them. Once they halted to adjust the blankets on
the saddle, and they listened for any sounds that,
might indicate that Simon was overtaking them,
But all they heard was the soft rustle of the leaves:
under the wind-blown snow.
" Linda," he asked suddenly. " Does it seem tr*
you to be awfully cold? "
She waited a long time before she spoke. This
was not the hour to make quick answers. On any
decision might rest their success or failure.
" I believe I can stand it — awhile longer," she
answered at last.
" But I don't think we 'd better try to. It 's
getting cold. Every hour it 's colder, and I seem
276 The Strength of the Pines
to be getting weaker. It is n't a real wound, Linda
— but it seems to have knocked some of my vitality
out of me, and I 'm dreadfully in need of rest. I
think we 'd better try to make a camp."
" And go on by morning light? "
" Yes."
' But Simon might overtake us then."
" We must stay out of sight of the trail. But
somehow — I can't help but hope he won't try to
follow us on such a night as this."
He drew up the horse, and they sat in the beat of
the snow. " Don't make any mistake about that,
Bruce," she told him. " Remember, that unless he
overtakes us before we come into the protection of
the courts, his whole fight is lost. It does n't alone
mean loss of the estate — for which he would risk
his life just as he has a dozen times. It means de-
feat — a thing that would come hard to Simon.
Besides, he 's got a fire within him that will keep
him warm."
' You mean — hatred? "
" Hatred. Nothing else."
" But in spite of it we must make camp. We '11
get off the trail — if we 're still on it — and try to
slip through to-morrow. You see what 's going to
happen if we keep on going this way? "
" I know that I feel a queer dread — and hope-
lessness — "
"And that dread and hopelessness are just as
much danger signals as the sound of Simon's horse
behind us. It means that the cold and the snow
and the fear are getting the better of us. Linda,
The Corning of the Strength 277
it 's a race with death. Don't misunderstand me or
disbelieve me. It is n't Simon alone now. It 's the
cold and the snow and the fear. The thing to do is
to make camp, keep as warm as we can in our blan-
kets, and push on in the morning. It 's two full
days' ride, going fast, the best we can go — and
God knows what will happen before the end."
"Then turn off the trail, Bruce," the girl told
him.
" I don't know that we 're even on the trail."
" Turn off, anyway. As long as we stay to-
gether — it does n't matter."
She spoke very quietly. Then he felt a strange
thing. A warmth which even that growing, terri-
ble cold could not transcend swept over him. For
her arms had crept out under his arms and encir-
cled his great breast, then pressed with all her gen-
tle strength.
No word of encouragement, no cheery expres-
sion of hope could have meant so much. Not de-
feat, not even the long darkness of death itself
could appall him now. All that he had given and
suffered and endured, all the mighty effort that he
had made had in an instant been shown in its true
light, a thing worth while, a sacrifice atoned for
and redeemed.
They headed off into the thickets, blindly, letting
the horse choose the way. They felt him turn to
avoid some object in his path — evidently a fallen
tree — and they mounted a slight ridge or rise.
Then they felt the wet touch of fir branches against
their cheeks.
278 The Strength of the Pines
Bruce stopped the horse and both dismounted.
Both of them knew that under the drooping limhs
of the tree they would find, at least until the snows
deepened, comparative shelter from the storm.
Here, rolled in their blankets, they might pass the
remainder of the night hours.
Bruce tied the horse, and the girl unrolled the
blankets. But she did not lay them together to
make a rude bed, — and the dictates of convention-
ality had nothing whatever to do with it. If one
jot more warmth could have been achieved by it,
these two would have lain side by side through the
night hours between the same blankets. She knew,
however, that more warmth could be achieved if
each of them took a blanket and rolled up in it;
thus they would get two thicknesses instead of one
and no openings to admit the freezing air. When
this was done they lay side by side, economizing
the last atom of warmth.
The night hours were dreary and long. The
rain beat into the limbs above them, and sometimes
it sifted through. At the first gray of dawn Bruce
opened his eyes.
His dreams had been troubled and strange, but
the reality to which he wakened gave him no sense
of relief. The first knowledge that he had was
that the snow had continued to sift down through-
out the night, that it had already laid a white man-
tle over the wilderness, and the whirling flakes still
cut off all view of the familiar landmarks by which
he might get his bearings.
He had this knowledge before he was actually
The Coming of the Strength 279
cognizant of the cold. And then its first realization
came to him in a strange heaviness and dullness in
his body, and an almost irresistible desire to sleep.
He fought a little battle, lying there under the
snow-covered limbs of the fir tree. Because it was
one in which no blows were exchanged, no shots
fired, and no muscles called into action, it was no
less a battle, trying and stern. It was a fight waged
in his own spirit, and it seemed to rend him in twain.
The whole issue was clear in his mind at once.
The cold had deepened in these hours of dawn, and
he was slowly, steadily freezing to death. Even
now the blood flowed less swiftly in his veins.
Death itself, in the moment, had lost all horror for
him; rather it was a thing of peace, of ease. All
he had to do was to lie still. Just close his eyes, —
and soft shadows would drop over him.
They would drop over Linda too. She lay still
beside him; perhaps they had already fallen. The
war he had waged so long and so relentlessly would
end in blissful calm. Outside there was only snow
and cold and wracking limbs and pain, only fur-
ther conflict with tireless enemies, only struggle to
tear his agonized body to pieces ; and the bitterness
of defeat in the end. He saw his chances plain as
he lay beneath that gray sky. Even now, perhaps,
Simon was upon them. Only two little rifle shells
remained with which to combat him, and he doubted
that his wounded arm would hold the rifle steady.
There were weary, innumerable miles between them
and any shelter, and only the terrible, trackless for-
est lay between.
2 So The Strength of the Pines
Why not lie still and let the curtains fall? This
was an easy, tranquil passing, and heaven alone
knew what dreadful mode of egress would be his
if he rose to battle further. All the argument
seemed on one side.
But high and bright above all this burned the
indomitable flame of his spirit. Even as the
thoughts came to him it mounted higher, it pro-
pelled its essence of strength through his veins, it
brought new steel to his muscles. To rise, to fight,
to struggle on! Never to yield until the Power
above decreed! To stand firm, even as the pines
themselves. The dominant greatness that Linda
had found in this man rose in him, and he set his
muscles like iron.
He struggled to rise. He shook off the mists of
the frost in his brain. He seemed to come to life.
Quickly he knelt by Linda and shook her shoulders
in his hands. She opened her eyes.
" Get up, Linda," he said gently. " We have to
go on."
She started to object, but a message in his eyes
kept her from it. His own spirit went into her.
He helped her to her feet.
" Help me roll the blankets," he commanded,
" and take out enough food for breakfast. We
can't stop to eat it here. I think we 're in sight of
the main trail; whether we can find it — in
the snow — I don't know." She understood ;
usually the absence of vegetation on a well-worn
trail makes a shallow covering of snow appear more
level and smooth and thus possible to follow.
The Coming of the Strength 281
" I 'm afraid the snow 's already too deep," He
continued, " but we can go on in a general direction
for a while at least — unless the snow gets worse
so I can't even guess the position of the sun. We
must get farther into the thickets before we stop
to eat."
They were strange figures in the snow flurries
as they went to work to roll the blankets into a com-
pact bundle. The food she had taken from their
stores for breakfast he thrust into the pocket of
his coat; the rest, with the blankets, she tied swiftly
on the horse. They unfastened the animal and for
a moment she stood holding the reins while Bruce
crept back on the hillside to look for the trail.
The snow swept round them, and they felt the
lowering menace of the cold. And at that instant
those dread spirits that rule the wilderness, jealous
then and jealous still of the intrusion of man, dealt
them a final, deadly blow.
Its weapon was just a sound — a loud crash in
a distant thicket — and a pungent message on the
wind that their human senses were too blunt to re-
ceive. Bruce saw the full dreadfulness of the blow
and was powerless to save. The horse suddenly
snorted loudly, then reared up. He saw as in a
tragic dream the girl struggle to hold him; he saw
her pulled down into the snow and the rein jerked
from her hand. Then the animal plunged, wheeled,
and raced at top speed away into the snow flurries.
Some Terror that as yet they could not name had
broken their control of him and in an instant taken
from them this one last hope of safety.
XXXII
BRUCE walked over to Linda, waiting in the
snow on her knees. It was not an intentional pos-
ture. She had been jerked down by the plunging
horse, and she had not yet completely risen. But
the sight of her slight figure, her raised white face,
her clasped hands, and the remorseless snow of the
wilderness about her moved Bruce to his depths.
He saw her but dimly in the snow flurries, and she
looked as if she were in an attitude of prayer.
He came rather slowly, and he even smiled a
little. And she gave him a wan, strange, little smile
in return.
' We 're down to cases at last," he said, with a
rather startling quietness of tone. ' You see what
it means? "
She nodded, then got to her feet.
" We can walk out, if we are let alone and given
time; it is n't that we are obliged to have the horse.
But our blankets are on its back, and this storm is
steadily becoming a blizzard. And you see — time
is one thing that we don't have. No human being
can stand this cold for long unprotected."
"And we can't keep going — keep warm by
walking? "
His answer was to take out his knife and put the
point of the steel to his thumb nail. His eyes
The Coming of the Strength 283
strained, then looked up. " ^ little way," he an-
swered, " but we can't keep our main directions.
The sun does n't even cast a shadow on my nail to
show us which is west. We could keep up a while,
perhaps, but there is no end to this wilderness and
at noon or to-night — the result would be the
same."
" And it means — the end? "
" If I can't catch the horse. I 'm going now.
If we can regain the blankets — by getting in rifle
range of the horse — we might make some sort of
shelter in the snow and last out until we can see
our way and get our bearings. You don't know
of any shelter — any cave or cabin where we might
build a fire?"
" No. There are some in the hills, but we can't
see our way to find them."
" I know. I should have thought of that. And
you see, we can't build a fire here — everything is
wet, and the snow is beginning to whirl so we
could n't keep it going. If we should stagger on all
day in this storm and this snow, we could n't en-
dure the night." He smiled again. " And I want
you to climb a tree — and stay there — until I come
back."
She looked at him dully. "What's the use,
Bruce? You won't come back. You '11 chase the
thing until you die — I know you. You don't
know when to give up. And if you want to come
back — you could n't find the way. I 'm going
with you."
" No." Once more she started to disobey, but
.284 The Strength of the Pines
the grave displeasure in his eyes restrained her.
" It 's going to take all my strength to fight through
that snow — I must go fast — and maybe life and
death will have to depend on your strength at the
end of the trail. You must save it — the little you
have left. I can find my way back to you by fol-
lowing my own tracks — the snow won't fill them
up so soon. And since I must take the rifle — to
shoot the horse if I can't catch him — you must
climb a tree. You know why."
" Partly to hide from Simon if he comes this way.
And partly — "
" Because there 's some danger in that thicket
beyond!" he interrupted her. " The horse's terror
was real — besides, you heard the sound. It might
be only a puma. But it might be — the Killer.
Swing your arms and struggle all you can to keep
the blood flowing. I won't be gone long."
He started to go, and she ran after him with out-
stretched arms. " Oh, Bruce," she cried, " come
back soon — soon. Don't leave me to die alone.
I 'm not strong enough for that — "
He whirled, took two paces back, and his arms
went about her. He had forgotten his injury long
since. He kissed her cool lips and smiled into her
eyes. Then at once the flurries hid him.
The girl climbed up into the branches of a fir
tree. In the thicket beyond a great gray form
tacked back and forth, trying to locate a scent that
a second before he had caught but dimly and had
lost. It was the Killer, and his temper was lost
long ago in the whirling snow. His anger was
The Coming of the Strength 285
upon him, partly from the discomfort of the storm,
partly from the constant, gnawing pain of three
bullet wounds in his powerful body. Besides, he
realized the presence of his old and greatest enemy,
— those tall, slight forms that had crossed him so
many times, that had stung him with their bullets,
and whose weakness he had learned.
The wind was variable, and all at once he caught
the scent plain. He lurched forward, crashed
again through the brush, and walked out into the
snow-swept open. Linda saw his vague outline,
and at first she hung perfectly motionless, hoping
to escape his gaze. She had been told many times
that grizzlies cannot climb, yet she had no desire to
see him raging below her, reaching, possibly trying
to shake her from the limbs. Her muscles were
stiff and inactive from the cold, and she doubted her
ability to hold on. Besides, in that dread moment
she found it hard to believe that the Killer would
not be able to swing into the lower limbs, high
enough to strike her down.
He did n't seem to see her. His eyes were low-
ered ; besides, it was never the grizzly way to search
the branches of a tree. The wind blew the message
that he might have read clearly in the opposite di-
rection. She saw him walk slowly across the snow,
head lowered, a huge gray ghost in the snow flurries
not one hundred feet distant. Then she saw him
pause, with lowered head.
In the little second before the truth came to her,
the bear had already turned. Brace's tracks were
somewhat dimmed by the snow, but the Killer in-
286 The Strength of the Pines
terpreted them truly. She saw too late that he had
crossed them, read their message, and now had
turned into the clouds of snow to trace them down.
For an instant she gazed at him in speechless hor-
ror; and already the flurries had almost obscured
his gray figure. Desperately she tried to call his
attention from the tracks. She called, then she
rustled the branches as loudly as she could. But
the noise of the wind obscured what sound she made,
and the bear was already too absorbed in the hunt
to turn and see her. As always, in the nearing
presence of a foe, his rage grew upon him.
Sobbing, Linda swung down from the tree. She
had no conscious plan of aid to her lover. She only
had a blind instinct to seek him, to try to warn him
of his danger, and at least to be with him at the
death. The great tracks of the Killer, seemingly
almost as long as her own arm, made a plain trail
for her to follow. She too struck off into the storm-
swept canyon.
And the forest gods who dwell somewhere in the
region where the pine tops taper into the sky, and
who pull the strings that drop and raise the curtain
and work the puppets that are the players of the
wilderness dramas, saw a chance for a great and
tragic jest in this strange chase over the snow.
The destinies of Bruce, Linda, and the Killer were
already converging on this trail that all three fol-
lowed, — the path that the runaway horse made in
the snow. Only one of the great forces of the war
that had been waged at Trail's End was lacking,
and now he came also.
The Coming of the Strength 287
Simon Turner had ridden late into the night and
from before dawn; with remorseless fury he had
goaded on his exhausted horse, he had driven him
with unpitying strength through coverts, over great
rocks, down into rocky canyons in search of Bruce
and Linda, and now, as the dawn broke, he thought
that he had found them. He had suddenly come
upon the tracks of Bruce's horse in the snow.
If he had encountered them farther back, when
the animal had been running wildly, he might have
guessed the truth and rejoiced. No man would
attempt to ride a horse at a gallop through that
trailless stretch. But at the point he found the
tracks most of the horse's terror had been spent,
and it was walking leisurely, sometimes lowering
its head to crop the shrubbery. The trail was com-
paratively fresh too; or else the fast- falling snow
would have already obscured it. He thought that
his hour of triumph was near.
But it had come none too soon. And Simon —
out of passion-filled eyes — looked and saw that it
would likely bring death with it.
He realized his position fully. The storm was
steadily developing into one of those terrible
mountain blizzards in which, without shelter, no hu-
man being might live. He was far from his home,
he had no blankets, and he could not find his way.
Yet he would not have turned back if he could.
In all the manifold mysteries of the wilderness
there was no stranger thing than this: that in the
face of his passion Simon had forgotten and ig-
nored even that deepest instinct, self-preservation.
288 The Strength of the Pines
Nothing mattered any more except his hatred.
No desire was left except its expression.
The securing of the document by which Bruce
could take the great estates from him was only a
trifle now. He believed wholly within his own soul
that the wilderness — without his aid — would do
his work of hatred for him; and that by no con-
ceivable circumstances could Bruce and Linda find
shelter from the blizzard and live through the day.
He could find their bodies in the spring if he by any
chance escaped himself, and take the Ross-Folger
agreement from them. But it was not enough.
He wanted also to do the work of destruction.
Even his own death — if it were only delayed
until his vengeance was wreaked — could not mat-
ter now. In all the ancient strife and fury and
ceaseless war of the wild through which he had
come, there was no passion to equal this. The
Killer was content to let the wolf kill the fawn for
him. The cougar will turn from its warm, newly
slain prey, in which its white fangs have already
dipped, at the sight of some great danger in the
thickets. But Simon could not turn. Death low-
ered its wings upon him as well as upon his enemy,
yet the fire in his heart and the fury in his brain shut
out all thought of it.
He sprang off his horse better to examine the
tracks, and then stood, half bent over, in the snow.
Bruce Folger headed swiftly up the trail that
his runaway horse had made. It was, he thought,
his last effort, and he gave his full strength to it.
The Coming of the Strength 289
Weakened as he was by the cold and the wound, he
could not have made headway at all except for the
fact that the wind was behind him.
The snow ever fell faster, in larger flakes, and
the track dimmed before his eyes. It was a losing
game. Terrified not only by the beast that had
stirred in the thicket but by the ever-increasing wind
as well, the animal would not linger to be overtaken.
Bruce had not ridden it enough to have tamed it,
and his plan was to attempt to shoot the creature
on sight, rather than try to catch it. They could
not go forward, anyway, as long as the blizzard
lasted. Which way was east and which was west
he could no longer guess. And with the blankets
they might make some sort of shelter and keep
life in their bodies until the snow ceased and they
could find their way.
The cold was deepening, the storm was increas-
ing in fury. Bruce's bones ached, his wounded
arm felt numb and strange, the frost was getting
into his lungs. The wind's breath was ever keener,
its whistle was louder in the pines. There was no
hope of the storm decreasing, rather it was steadily
growing worse. And Bruce had some pre-knowl-
edge — an inheritance, perhaps, from frontier an-
cestors — of the real nature of the mountain bliz-
zard such as was descending on him now. It was a
losing fight. All the optimism of youth and the
spirit of the angels could not deny this fact.
The tracks grew more dim, and he began to be
afraid that the falling flakes would obscure his own
footprints so that he could not find his way back to
290 The Strength of the Pines
Linda. And he knew, beyond all other knowledge,
that he wanted her with him when the shadows
dropped down for good and all. He could n't face
them bravely alone. He wanted her arms about
him ; the flight would be easier then.
" Oh, what 's the use? " he suddenly said to the
wind. " Why not give up and go back? "
He halted in the trail and started to turn. But
at that instant a banner of wind swept down into
his face, and the eddy of snow in front of him was
brushed from his gaze. Just for the space of a
breath the canyon for a hundred feet distant was
partially cleared of the blinding streamers of snow.
And he uttered a long gasp when he saw, thirty
yards distant and at the farthest reaches of his
sight, the figure of a saddled horse.
His gun leaped to his shoulder, yet his eagerness
did not cost him his self-control. He gazed quietly
along the sights until he saw the animal's shoulder
between them. His finger pressed back against
the trigger.
The horse rocked down, seemingly instantly
killed, and the snow swept in between. Bruce cried
out in triumph. Then he broke into a run and sped
through the flurries toward his dead.
But it came about that there was other business
for Bruce than the recovery of his blankets that he
had supposed would be tied to the saddle. The
snow was thick between, and he was within twenty
feet of the animal's body before he glimpsed it
clearly again. And he felt the first wave of won-
der, the first promptings of the thought that the
The Coming of the Strength 291
horse he had shot down was not his, but one that he
had never seen before.
But there was no time for the thought to go fully
home. Some one cried out — a strange, half -snarl
of hatred and triumph that was almost lacking in
all human quality — and a man's body leaped to-
ward him from the thicket before which the horse
had fallen. It was Simon, and Bruce had mis-
taken his horse for the one he had ridden.
XXXIII
EVEN in that instant crisis Bruce did not forget
that he had as yet neglected to expel the empty
cartridge from the barrel of his rifle and to throw
in the other from the magazine. He tried to get the
gun to his shoulder, working the lever at the same
time. But Simon's leap was too fast for him. His
strong hand seized the barrel of the gun and
snatched it from his hands. Then the assailant
threw it back, over his shoulder, and it fell softly
in the snow. He waited, crouched.
The two men stood face to face at last. All
things else were forgotten. The world they had
known before — a world of sorrow and pleasures,
of mountains and woods and homes — faded out
and left no realities except each other's presence.
All about them were the snow flurries that their
eyes could not penetrate, and it was as if they were
two lone contestants on an otherwise uninhabited
sphere who had come to grips at last. The falling
snow gave the whole picture a curious tone of un-
reality and dimness.
Bruce straightened, and his face was of iron.
' Well, Simon," he said. " You Ve come."
The man's eyes burned red through the snow.
" Of course I would. Did you think you could
escape me? "
The Coming of the Strength 293
" It did n't much matter whether I escaped
you or not," Bruce answered rather quietly.
" Neither one of us is going to escape the storm and
the cold. I suppose you know that."
"I know that one of us is. Because one of us is
going out — a more direct way — first. Which
one that is doesn't much matter." His great
hands clasped. " Bruce, when I snatched your gun
right now I could have done more. I could have
sprung a few feet farther and had you around the
waist — taken by surprise. The fight would
have been already over. I think I could have done
more than that even — with my own rifle as you
came up. It 's laying there, just beside the horse."
But Bruce did n't turn his eyes to look at it. He
was waiting for the attack.
" I could have snatched your life just as well,
but I wanted to wait," Simon went on. " I wanted
to say a few words first, and wanted to master you
— not by surprise — but by superior strength
alone."
It came into Bruce's mind that he could tell
Simon of the wound near his shoulder, how be-
cause of it no fight between them would be a fair
test of superiority, yet the words did n't come to his
lips. He could not ask mercy of this man, either
directly or indirectly, any more than the pines asked
mercy of the snows that covered them.
' You were right when you said there is no es-
caping from this storm," Simon went on. " But it
does n't much matter. It 's the end of a long war,
and what happens to the victor is neither here nor
294 The Strength of the Pines
there. It seems all the more fitting that we should
meet just as we have — at the very brink of death
— and Death should be waiting at the end for the
one of us who survives. It 's so like this damned,
terrible wilderness in which we live."
Bruce gazed in amazement. The dark and
dreadful poetry of this man's nature was coming to
the fore. The wind made a strange echo to his
words, — a long, wild shriek as it swept over the
heads of the pines.
' Then why are you waiting? " Bruce asked.
"So you can understand everything. But I
guess that time is here. There is to be no mercy
at the end of this fight, Bruce; I ask none and will
give none. You have waged a war against me,
you have escaped me many times, you have won the
love of the woman I love — and this is to be my
answer." His voice dropped a note and he spoke
more quietly. " I 'm going to kill you, Bruce."
" Then try it," Bruce answered steadily. " I 'm
in a hurry to go back to Linda."
Simon's smoldering wrath blazed up at the
words. Both men seemed to spring at the same
time. Their arms flailed, then interlocked; and
they rocked a long time — back and forth in the
snow.
They fought in silence. The flurries dropped
over them, and the wind swept by in its frantic
wandering. Bruce called upon his last ounce of re-
serve strength, — that mysterious force that al-
ways sweeps to a man's aid in a moment of crisis.
For the first time he had full realization of Si-
The Coming of the Strength 295
mon's mighty strength. With all the power of his
body he tried to wrench him off his feet, but it was
like trying to tear a tree from the ground.
But surprise at the other's power was not con-
fined to Bruce alone. Simon knew that he had an
opponent worthy of the iron of his own muscles,
and he put all his terrible might into the battle.
He tried to reach Bruce's throat, but the man's
strong shoulder held the arm against his side. Si-
mon's great hand reached to pin Bruce's arm, and
for the first time he discovered the location of his
weakness.
He saw the color sweep from Bruce's face and
water drops that were not melted snow come upon
it. It was all the advantage needed between such
evenly matched contestants. And Simon forgot
his spoken word that he wished this fight to be a
test of superiority alone. His fury swept over him
like a flood and effaced all things else ; and he cen-
tered his whole attack upon Bruce's wound.
In a moment he had him down, and he struck once
into Bruce's white face with his terrible knuckles.
The blow sent a strange sickness through
the younger man's frame; and he tried vainly
to struggle to his feet. " Fight! Fight on! " was
the message his mind dispatched along his nerves
to his tortured muscles, but for an instant they
wholly refused to respond. They had endured too
much. Total unconsciousness hovered above him,
ready to descend.
Strangely, he seemed to know that Simon had
crept from his body and was even now reaching
296 The Strength of the Pines
some dreadful weapon that lay beside the dead
form of the horse. In an instant he had it, and
Brace's eyes opened in time to see him swinging it
aloft. It was his rifle, and Simon was aiming a
murderous blow at him with its stock.
There was no chance to ward it off. No human
skull could withstand its shattering impact. Bruce
saw the man's dark face with the murder madness
upon it, the blazing eyes, the lips drawn back. The
muscles contracted to deal the blow.
But that war of life and death in the far reaches
of Trail's End was not to end so soon. At that in-
stant there was an amazing intervention.
A great gray form came lunging out of the
snow flurries. Their vision was limited to a few
feet, and so fast the creature came, with such in-
credible, smashing power, that he was upon them
in a breath. It was the Killer in the full glory
of the charge; and he had caught up with them at
last.
Bruce saw only his great figure looming just over
him. Simon, with amazing agility, leaped to one
side just in time, then battered down the rifle stock
with all his strength. But the blow was not meant
for Bruce. It struck where aimed, — the great
gray shoulder of the grizzly.
Then, dimmed and half -obscured by the snow
flurries, there began as strange a battle as the great
pines above them had ever beheld. The Killer's
rage was upon him, and the blow at the shoulder
had arrested his charge for a moment only. Then
he wheeled, a snarling, fighting monster with death
The Coming of the Strength 297
for any living creature in the blow of his forearm,
and lunged toward Simon again.
It was the Killer at his grandest. The little
eyes blazed, the neck hair bristled, he struck with
forearms and jaws — lashing, lunging, recoiling
— all the terrible might and fury of the wilderness
centered and personified in his mighty form.
Simon had no chance to shoot his rifle. In the in-
stant that he would raise it those great claws and
fangs would be upon him. He swung it as a club,
striking again and again, dodging the sledge-ham-
mer blows and springing aside in the second of the
Killer's lunges. He was fighting for his life, and
no eye could bemean that effort.
Simon himself seemed exalted, and for once it
appeared that the grizzly had found an opponent
worthy of his might. It was all so fitting: that
these two mighty powers, typifying all that is re-
morseless and terrible in the wild, should clash at
last in the gathering fury of the storm. They were
of one kind, and they seemed to understand each
other. The lust and passion and fury of battle
were upon them both.
The scene harked back to the young days of the
world, when man and beast battled for dominance.
Nothing had changed. The forest stood grave and
silent, just the same. The elements warred against
them from the clouds, — that ancient persecution
of which the wolf pack sings on the ridge at night,
that endless strife that has made of existence a
travail and a scourge. Man and beast and storm
— those three great foes were arrayed the same as
298 The Strength of the Pines
ever. Time swung backward a thousand-thousand
years.
The storm gathered in force. The full strength
of the blizzard was upon them. The snow seemed
to come from all directions in great clouds and
flurries and streamers, and time after time it
wholly hid the contestants from Bruce's eyes. At
such times he could tell how the fight was going by
sound alone, — the snarls of the Killer, the wild
oaths of Simon, the impact of the descending rifle-
butt. Bruce gave no thought to taking part.
Both were enemies; his own strength seemed gone.
The cold deepened; Bruce could feel it creeping
into his blood, halting its flow, threatening the spark
of life within him. The full light of day had come
out upon the land.
Bruce knew the wilderness now. All its primi-
tive passions were in play, all its mighty forces at
grips. The storm seemed to be trying to extin-
guish these mortal lives; jealous of their intrusion,
longing for the world it knew before living things
came to dwell upon it, when its winds swept end-
lessly over an uninhabited earth, and its winter
snows lay trackless and its rule was supreme. And
beneath it, blind to the knowledge that in union
alone lay strength to oppose its might — to oppose
all those cruel forces that make a battleground of
life — man and beast fought their battle to the
death.
It seemed to go on forever. Linda came steal-
ing out of the snow — following the grizzly's trail
— and crept beside Bruce. She crouched beside
The Coming of the Strength 299
him, and his arm went about her as if to shield her.
She had heard the sounds of the battle from afar;
she had thought that Bruce was the contestant, and
her terror had left a deep pallor upon her face ; yet
now she gazed upon that frightful conflict with a
strange and enduring calm. Both she and Bruce
knew that there was but one sure conqueror, and
that was Death. If the Killer survived the fight
and through the mercy of the forest gods spared
their lives, there remained the blizzard. They could
conceive of no circumstances whereby further effort
would be of the least avail. The horse on which
was tied their scanty blankets was miles away by
now ; its tracks were obscured in the snow, and they
could not find their way to any shelter that might
be concealed among the ridges.
The scene grew in fury. The last burst of
strength was upon Simon; in another moment he
would be exhausted. The bear had suffered ter-
rible punishment from the blows of the rifle stock.
He recoiled once more, then lunged with unbe-
lievable speed. His huge paw, with all his might
behind it, struck the weapon from Simon's hand.
It shot through the air seemingly almost as fast
as the bullets it had often propelled from its muzzle
and struck the trunk of a tree. So hard it came
that the lock was shattered ; they heard the ring of
metal. The bear rocked forward once more and
struck again. And then all the sound that was left
was the eerie complaint of the wind.
Simon lay still. The brave fight was over. His
trial had ended fittingly, — in the grip of such
3 oo The Strength of the Pines
powers as were typical of himself. But the bear
did not leap upon him to tear his flesh. For an in-
stant he stood like a statue in gray stone, head low-
ered, as if in a strange attitude of thought. The
snow swept over him.
Linda and Bruce gazed at him in silent awe.
Some way, they felt no fear. No room in their
hearts was left for it after the tumult of that battle.
The great grizzly uttered one deep note and half-
turned about. His eyes rested upon the twain,
but he did not seem to see them.
The fury was dead within him; this much was
plain. The hair began to lie down at his shoul-
ders. The terrible eyes lost their fire. Then he
turned agr.in and headed off slowly, deliberately,
directly into the face of the storm.
XXXIV
THE flurries almost immediately obscured the
Killer's form, and Bruce turned his attention back
to Linda. " It 's the end," he said quietly. ' Why
not here — as well as anywhere else? "
But before the question was finished, a strange
note had come into his voice. It was as if his atten-
tion had been called from his words by something
much more momentous. The truth was that it
had been caught and held by a curious expression
on the girl's face.
Some great idea, partaking of the nature of in-
spiration, had come to her. He saw it in the grow-
ing light in her eyes, the deepening of the soft lines
of her face. All at once she sprang to her feet.
"Bruce!" she cried. "Perhaps there's a way
yet. A long, long chance, but maybe a way yet.
Get your rifle — Simon's is broken — and come
with me."
Without waiting for him to rise she struck off
into the storm, following the huge footprints of the
bear. The man struggled with himself, summoned
all that was left of his reserve supply of strength,
and leaped up. He snatched his rifle from the
ground where Simon had thrown it, and in an in-
stant was beside her. Her cheeks were blazing.
" Maybe it just means further torture," she con-
302 The Strength of the Pines
fessed to him, " but don't you want to make every
effort we can to save ourselves? Don't you want
to fight till the last breath? "
She glanced up and saw her answer in the grow-
ing strength of his face. Then his words spoke too.
" As long as the slightest chance remains," he re-
plied.
" And you 11 forgive me if it comes to nothing? "
He smiled, dimly. She took fresh heart when she
saw he still had strength enough to smile. " You
don't have to ask me that."
" A moment ago an idea came to me — it came
so straight and sure it was as if a voice told me,"
she explained hurriedly. She didn't look at him
again. She kept her eyes intent upon the great
footprints in the snow. To miss them for a second
meant, in that world of whirling snow, to lose them
forever. " It was after the bear had killed Simon
and had gone away. He acted exactly as if he
thought of something and went out to do it — ex-
actly as if he had a destination in view. Didn't
you see — his anger seemed to die in him and he
started off in the face of the storm. I 've watched
the ways of animals too long not to know that he
had something in view. It was n't food ; he would
have attacked the body of the horse, or even Simon's
body. If he had just been running away or wan-
dering, he would have gone with the wind, not
against it. He was weakened from the fight, per-
haps dying — and I think — "
He finished the sentence for her, breathlessly.
" That he 's going toward shelter."
The Coming of the Strength 303
" Yes. You know, Bruce — the bears hibernate
every year. They always seem to have places all
chosen — usually caverns in the hillsides or under
uprooted trees — and when the winter cuts off their
supplies of food they go straight toward them.
That 's my one hope now — that the Killer has gone
to some cave he knows about to hibernate until this
storm is over. I think from the way he started off,
so sure and so straight, that it 's near. It would
be dry and out of the storm, and if we could take it
away from him we could make a fire that the snow
would n't put out. It would mean life — and we
could go on when the storm is over."
" You remember — we have only one cartridge."
" Yes, I know — I heard you fire. And it 's
only a thirty-thirty at that. It 's a risk — as ter-
rible a risk as we 've yet run. But it 's a chance."
They talked no more. Instead, they walked as
fast as they could into the face of the storm. It
was a moment of respite. This new hope returned
some measure of their strength to them. They
walked much more swiftly than the bear, and they
could tell by the appearance of the tracks that
they were but a few yards behind him.
" He won't smell us, the wind blowing as it does,"
Linda encouraged. " And he won't hear us either."
Now the tracks were practically unspotted with
the flakes. They strained into the flurries. Now
they walked almost in silence, their footfall muffled
in the snow.
They soon became aware that they were mount-
ing a low ridge. They left the underbrush and
304 The Strength of the Pines
emerged into the open timber. And all at once
Bruce, who now walked in front, paused with lifted
hand, and pointed. Dim through the flurries they
made out the outline of the bear. And Linda's in-
spiration had come true.
There was a ledge of rocks just in front — a
place such as the rattlesnakes had loved in the blast-
ing sun of summer — and a black hole yawned in
its side. The aperture had been almost covered
with the snow, and they saw that the great creature
was scooping away the remainder of the white drift
with his paw. As they waited, the opening grew
steadily wider, revealing the mouth of a little cav-
ern in the face of the rock.
"Shoot!" Linda whispered. "If he gets in-
side we won't be able to get him out."
But Bruce shook his head, then stole nearer.
She understood; he had only one cartridge, and he
must not take the risk of wounding the animal.
The fire had to be centered on a vital place.
He walked steadily nearer until it seemed to
Linda he would advance straight into reach of the
terrible claws. He held the rifle firmly; his jaw
was set, his face white, his eyes straight and strong
with the strength of the pines themselves. He went
as softly as he could — nearer, ever nearer — -the
rifle cocked and ready in his hands.
The Killer turned his head and saw Bruce. Rage
flamed again in his eyes. He half -turned about;
then poised to charge.
The gun moved swiftly, easily, to the man's
shoulder, his chin dropped down, his straight eyes
The Coming of the Strength 305
gazed along the barrel. In spite of his wound
never had human arms held more steady than his
did then. And he marked the little space of gray
squarely between the two reddening eyes.
The finger pressed back steadily against the trig-
ger. The rifle cracked in the silence. And then
there was a curious effect of tableau, a long second
in which all three figures seemed to stand deathly
still.
The bear leaped forward, and it seemed wholly
impossible to Linda that Bruce could swerve aside
in time to avoid the blow. She cried out in horror
as the great paws whipped down in the place where
Bruce had stood. But the man had been prepared
for this very recoil, and he had sprung aside just as
the claws raked past.
And the Killer would hunt no more in Trail's
End. At the end of that leap he fell, his great body
quivering strangely in the snow. The lead had
gone straight home where it had been aimed, and
the charge itself had been mostly muscular reflex.
He lay still at last, a gray, mammoth figure that
was majestic even in death.
No more would the deer shudder with terror at
the sound of his heavy step in the thicket. No
more would the herds fly into stampede at the sight
of his great shadow on the moonlit grass. The last
of the Oregon grizzlies had gone the way of all his
breed.
To Bruce and Linda, standing breathless and
awed in the snow-flurries, his death imaged the
306 The Strength of the Pines
passing of an old order — the last stand that the
forces of the wild had made against conquering
man. But there was pathos in it too. There was
the symbol of mighty breeds humbled and de-
stroyed.
But the pines were left. Those eternal symbols
of the wilderness — and of powers beyond the
wilderness — still stood straight and grand and im-
passive above them. While these two lived, at
least, they would still keep their watch over the
wilderness, they would still stand erect and brave
to the buffeting of the storm and snow, and in their
shade dwelt strength and peace.
The cavern that was revealed to them had a rock
floor and had been hollowed out by running water
in ages past. Bruce built a fire at its mouth of
some of the long tree roots that extended down into
it, and the life-giving warmth was a benediction.
Already the drifting snow had begun to cover the
aperture.
' We can wait here until the blizzard is done,"
Bruce told Linda, as she sat beside him in the soft
glow of the fire. " We have a little food, and we
can cut more from the body of the grizzly when we
need it. There 's dead wood under the snow. And
when the storm is over, we can get our bearings and
walk out."
She sat a long time without answering. " And
after that? " she asked.
He smiled. " No one knows. It 's ten days be-
fore the thirtieth — the blizzards up here never last
over three or four days. We Ve got plenty of time
The Coining of the Strength 307
to get the document down to the courts. The law
will deal with the rest of the Turners. We Ve won,
Linda."
His hands groped for hers, and he laid it against
his lips. With her other hand she stroked his snow-
wet hair. Her eyes were lustrous in the firelight.
" And after that — after all that is settled? You
will come back to the mountains? "
" Could I ever leave them! " he exclaimed. " Of
course, Linda. But I don't know what I can do
up here — except maybe to establish my claim to
my father's old farm. There 's a hundred or so
acres. I believe I 'd like to feel the handles of a
plow in my palms."
" It was what you were made for, Bruce," she
told him. " It 's born in you. There 's a hundred
acres there — and three thousand — somewhere
else. You Ve got new strength, Bruce. You
could take hold and make them yield up their hay
- and their crops — and fill all these hills with the
herds." She stretched out her arms. Then all at
once she dropped them almost as if in supplication.
But her voice had regained the old merry tone he
had learned to love when she spoke again. " Bruce,
have I got to do all the asking? "
His answer was to stretch his great arms and
draw her into them. His laugh rang in the cavern.
" Oh, my dearest! " he cried. The eyes lighted
in his bronzed face. " I ask for everything -
everything — bold that I am! And what I want
worst — this minute —
"Yes?"
308 The Strength of the Pines
" — Is just — a kiss."
She gave it to him with all the tenderness of her
soft lips. The snow sifted down outside. Again
the pines spoke to one another, but the sadness
seemed mostly gone from their soft voices.
THE END
Love story, adventure story, nature story — all three qualities combine
in this tale cf modern man and woman arrayed
against the forces of age-old savagery
THE VOICE OF
THE PACK
By EDISON MARSHALL
With frontispiece by W. Herbert Dunton
12mo. Cloth. 305 pages
" "The Voice of the Pack' is clean, fine, raw, bold, primitive;
and has a wonderfully haunting quality in the repeated wolf-
note" — Zone Grey.
"Taken all around 'The Voice of the Pack' is the best of the
stories about wild life that has come out in many, many moons."
— The Chicago Daily News.
"As a story that mingles Adventure, Nature Study and Ro-
mance, 'The Voice of the Pack' is undeniably of the front rank.
Mr. Marshall knows the wild places and the ways of the wild
creatures that range them — and he knows how to write. The
study of Dan Failing's development against a background of
the wild life of the mountains, is an exceedingly clever piece of
literary work." —The Boston Herald.
"An unusually good tale of the West, evidently written by a
man who knows about the habits of the wolf-packs and cougars."
— The New York Times.
LITTLE, BROWN & CO., PUBLISHERS
34 BEACON STREET, BOSTON
RETURN TO the circulation desk of any
University of California Library
or to the
NORTHERN REGIONAL LIBRARY FACILITY
Bldg. 400, Richmond Field Station
University of California
Richmond, CA 94804-4698
ALL BOOKS MAY BE RECALLED AFTER 7 DAYS
• 2-month loans may be renewed by calling
(510)642-6753
• 1 -year loans may be recharged by bringing
books to NRLF
• Renewals and recharges may be made 4
days prior to due date.
DUE AS STAMPED BELOW
SENtONILL
MAY 1 4 1999
U. C. BERKELEY
12,000(11/95)
YB 67101
M36522
THE UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LIBRARY